De Foe certainly possessed very uncommon merit, both as a man and as a writer, and yet few men have received more injurious treatment from
De Foe certainly possessed very uncommon merit, both
as a man and as a writer, and yet few men have received
more injurious treatment from their contemporaries. He
has repeatedly been represented as an unprincipled writer,
who had no view but to his own advantage, and who would
write for any party by which he was employed; charges
which appear to be totally destitute of foundation. He was
not rich; and he naturally and reasonably endeavoured to
make some pecuniary advantage of his writings; but he
seems always to have written in conformity to ins own
principles; and, though much abuse has been thrown out
against him, no evidence to the contrary has ever been,
produced. His prose works are much more valuable than
his poetical performances. As a political writer ue had
great merit; his sentiments appear to have been generally
just, and he expressed himself with force and perspicuity.
His pieces on the subject of trade and commerce exhibit
uncommon penetration, and very various and extensive
knowledge. But nis fame must ever rest on those works
which were entirely the offspring of invention, and of
these, his “Robinson Crusoe
” rises superior to every thing
of the kind. Alrnotigh we know of no imitations of this
which deserve notice, some critics have placed De Foe at
the head of a school, and have instanced Richardson as
one of his best scholars. Richardson, says Dr. Kippis,
seems to have learned from him that mode of delineating
characters, and carrying on dialogues, and that minute
discrimination of the circumstances of events, in which De
Foe so eminently excelled. If, in certain respects, the
disciple rose above his master, as he undoubtedly did, in
others tie was inferior to him; for his conversations are
sometimes more tedious and diffuse; and his works, though
beautiful in their kind, are not by any means so various.
Both of these writers had a wonderful ability in drawing
pictures of human nature anJ human life. A careful perusal of the “Family Instructor,
” and the “Religious
Courtship,
” would particularly tend to shew the resemblance between De Foe and Richardson. If, however,
Richardson is to be traced to De Foe, we have sometimes
thought that the latter was, with regard to simplicity of
style, somewhat indebted to Bunyan, an author whom he
must have read in his youth, and whose religious principles are obvious in the second volume of his “Robinson
Crusoe.
” After remaining in comparative obscurity for
many years, De Foe at last found a biographer in George
Chalmers, esq. who has done ample justice to his memory,
and has presented the literary world with a more elegant,
accurate, and satisfactory account of his personal history
and writings, than could have been expected so long after
his decease. It is unnecessary to add, that this, and every
succeeding account of De Foe, must be indebted to Mr.
Chalmers’s researches.
, a voluminous writer on almost every branch of medicine, was the son of a surgeon
, a voluminous writer on almost
every branch of medicine, was the son of a surgeon of
Montpellier. In 1691 he was made M. D. and in 1697,
professor of chemistry. He was also honoured with the
ribbon of the order of St. Michael, and was admitted one
of the foreign members of the royal society of London.
In 1732, being appointed physician to the galleys, he
quitted Montpellier, and went to Marseilles, where he died
on the 3d of April, 1746. Of his works, the following
have been most noticed: “Experiences sur la Bile, et les
cadavres des pestiferes, faites par M. D.; accompagnees
des Lettres, &c.
” Zurich, Chymie raisonnee, ou Ton tache de decouvrir
la nature et la maniere d'agir des remedes chymiques les
plus en usage en medicine et en chirurgie,
” Lyon,
, an Irish poetical writer, was the second son of Robert De la Cour, esq. of the county
, an Irish poetical writer, was the second son of Robert De la Cour, esq.
of the county of Cork, in Ireland, and born at Killowen,
near Blarney, in that county, in 1709. He was educated
at the university of Dublin, where to his classical studies
he added an uncommon predilection for poetry, and before he had reached his twenty-first year, produced a poem
entitled “Abelard to Eloisa,
” in imitation of Pope, which
was thought to possess a considerable portion of the spirit
and harmony of that master. From this time he proceeded
to publish shorter poems and sonnets, which were all favourably received; and in 1733 appeared his principal
work, “The Prospect of Poetry.
” So creditable a publication, and at such an age, gained him much and deserved applause; and in this list of admirers he had to count
on some of the best judges in both countries.
bert, J. J. Rousseau, and Duclos; and his destiny was fixed: he decided for philosophy, and became a writer in the Encyclopedic. In this new capacity his hardihood was
, one of the French Encyclopaedists, was born at Portets, in the vicinity of Bonrdeanx, in January 1726; was at an early age admitted into the college of the Jesuits, and, when only fifteen years old, was invested with their order. He was a youth of much imagination and sensibility, and at the same time strongly addicted to mental melancholy; during which he almost uninterruptedly directed his thoughts to the two great extremes of futurity, heaven and hell, which distressed him with perpetual agitations of mind. Deleyre, however, did not long continue in this state of mind, but quitted the Jesuit society, and with this, we have no small reason to believe, every religious faith whatever. As he was of plebeian birth, he could have no expectations from the court; his only alternatives were philosophy and the law; and the latter did not exactly correspond, we are told by his eulogist, either with his sensibility or his independence of mind. Montesquieu was at this time the Miecenas of Guienne, and became the patron of Deleyre from a thorough conviction of his talents: he introduced him to Diderot, d'Alembert, J. J. Rousseau, and Duclos; and his destiny was fixed: he decided for philosophy, and became a writer in the Encyclopedic. In this new capacity his hardihood was not inferior to that of his colleagues; the famous, or rather infamous, article on fanaticism was soon known to have been of his production, and it was likely to have been essentially detrimental to him; for he had now fixed his attention upon matrimony, and had obtained the consent of a lady; but the priests of the parish in which the ceremony was to have been celebrated, refused to unite them, in consequence of their having heard that Deleyre was the author of this article. His patronage, however, was at this time increased, and he had found a warm and steady friend in the due de Nivernois, who interfered in the dispute, and Deleyre obtained the fair object of his wishes. The duke had before this solicited, and successfully, the appointment for him of librarian to the infant prince of Parma, who was at this period committed to the immediate care of Condillac. In this situation he continued for some considerable time; and although a dispute respecting the mode of educating their pupil at length separated him from this celebrated logician, he appears to have always entertained for him the highest degree of respect.
, a political writer of great abilities, was born at Geneva about 1745. He received
, a political writer of great
abilities, was born at Geneva about 1745. He received a
liberal education, and embraced the profession of the law,
but diJ not long practise as an advocate before he formed
the resolution of quitting his native country, that he might
display his lively talents and his literary attainments on a
more conspicuous theatre of action, and might personally
observe the constitutions and customs of more powerful
states. The English) government, in particular, excited
his curiosity; and he resolved to study its nature and examine its principles with particular care and attention.
He even endeavoured in the first work which he published
after his arrival in England, to lead his readers into an
opinion that he was a native of this favoured country.
It was written in our language, and appeared in 1772,
with the title “A parallel between the English Government and the former Government of Sweden; containing
some observations on the late revolution in that kingdom,
and an examination of the causes that secure us against
both aristocracy and absolute monarchy.
” Many of our
countrymen were apprehensive that our constitution might
be subverted like that of Sweden; but the learned doctor
(for M. De Lolme had previously taken the degree of LL. D.) by contrasting with the polity of England the
government which Gustavus III. had overturned, plausibly
argued that such fears were ill-founded.
, a learned writer of the seventeenth century, whose works have but lately been
, a learned writer of the
seventeenth century, whose works have but lately been
brought to light, was born in the island of Chio; he took
the surname of Domesticus, as appears from the title of
his works. In 1637, became to Rome to prosecute his
studies in the Greek college, and seven years after he returned to his native country. During his studies at Rome,
he made so considerable a progress in learning and belles
lettres, that he was appointed to teach his fellow-students
the Greek language; but an illness, to which he became
subject, and which was thought likely to terminate in an
epilepsy, obliged him to leave the college, and disabled
him from taking the intended order of priesthood. Yet
before his return to the island of Chio, he made, with the
celebrated Lucas Holstenius, a tour to Florence, in order
to examine the Greek Mss. in the Laurentian library.
After his return to Chio, though he was not obliged to
preach the Roman catholic religion, he attempted to support and defend it by his writings. Controversial divinity
appears to have been the main object of his pursuits;
though he also cultivated poetry and physic. He composed a great number of iambic verses on sacred subjects;
one, among others, entitled “The Triumph of the Catholic
Faith.
” He wrote also a physical treatise against Galen and
his disciples. He married in 1649; but the latter part of
his life and his death are not recorded, though by the account of his countrymen he seems to have died at Messina.
His works were published for the first time in 1781, at
Rome, in 2 vols. 4to, under thfc title “Demetrii Pi-pani
Domestic! Chii Opera quie reperiuntur e Grseca in Latinum verr.it et adnotationes adjecit Bernardus Stephanopolus; accedit praefatio Joannis Christophori Amadutii,
cujus cura et studio nunc primum eduntur EpistoUe tres
Grgeco-Latinae Imperatorum Constantinopolitanorum Joannis et Emanuelis Comneni ad Romanos poutifices Houorium II. et Alexandrum III.
” Demetrius’s manuscripts
were discovered by signer Stellio Raffaetli, consul for the
English East India company at Chio, who sent them in
1776 to cardinal York, and earnestly requested of his eminence to get them published. The cardinal’s zeal for erudition, and for the interests of the Roman catholic religion,
prompted him to grant the request, and to charge Stephanopoli and Amaduzzi, two able Greek scholars, to
translate the Mss. in question into Latin, and to publish
both the text and their version together. They consist
chiefly of polemical treatises in favour of some points in
dispute between the Roman catholics and protestants, and
between the Roman catholics and the Greek church; but
the most valuable part of the work is the very learned preface by Amaduzzi, respecting the origin and progress of
the vulgar and modern Greek language, in which several
of Demetrius’s treatises are written; and another prefixed
to the letters mentioned in the title of the work, which
may be considered as one of the best essays extant on the
ancient Greek hand-writing.
the learned, and therefore it was necessary that something should be upon record concerning him. The writer of this short extract can add, from his own personal knowledge
, a man greatly distinguished in
the learned world, was born at Berlin, June 2, 1703, being
the son of a merchant there. He studied first at the French
college at Bering and thence removed to the university of
Francfortoa the Oder. He was examined for the ministry
in 1725, and after some difficulties obtained it; but the
ecclesiastics there being obl'g^d to certain subscriptions,
to which he could not absent, he quitted the country soon
after. He preached about five years in different towns of
the United Provinces, from whence he was invited to London in 1731, and ordained to serve the French chapel in
the Savoy. In 1762 he was named by the bishop of London to be one of the French chaplains to the king in his
chapel at St. James’s. He died Aug. 10, 1775. He seldom published any thing, except occasionally, in consequence of unforeseen engagements, or at the importunity
of friends. Several iittie poetical pieces, essays both in
sacred and profane literature, epitomes of books, memoirs,
dissertations, &c. by De Missy, with his initials C. D. M.
or some assumed name, and frequently anonymous, appeared in different collections and periodical journals in
Holland, France, and England, from 1721, many of which
are enumerated by Mr. Nichols. He was greatly assisting
to many of the learned, in their several undertakings:
among others indebted to him, were the late professor
Wetstein in his splendid edition of the Greek Testament,
Dr. Jortin in his Life of Erasmus, and Mr. Bowyer and
Mr. Nichols in “Two Essays on the Origin of Printing.
”
His name will frequently occur in the works of the learned,
and therefore it was necessary that something should be
upon record concerning him. The writer of this short
extract can add, from his own personal knowledge of him,
that he was not only very acute and very learned, but a
sincere lover and bold assertor of truth, and a man of
many and great virtues. He was twice married, but left no
child. After his death were published “Sermons sur divers Textes de PKcriture Sainte, par feu Monsieur Cesar
de Mis^y,
” '6 vols. 8vo. His valuable library, which was
sold by baker and Leigh in 1778, consisted of many books
enriched with his ms notes, some of which were purchased lor his majesty’s library, some for the British Museum, and some by Dr. Hunter, who also bought several
of his manuscripts.
, an English divine and theological writer, became a student of Baliiol college, Oxford, in the beginning
, an English divine and theological
writer, became a student of Baliiol college, Oxford, in
the beginning of 1590; and, when he had taken the degree of M. A. entered into holy orders, and was afterwards
admitted to the degree of D. D. He was domestic chaplain to George duke of Buckingham, and to James I. and
successively vicar of all the three churches in Reading;
being instituted to St. Lawrence’s, Jan. 7, 1603; to St.
Giles’s, July 9, 1612; and to St. Mary’s, March 31, 1614.
He died at Reading, in Jan. 1628-9, and was buried in
St. Mary’s church. Besides some sermons, enumerated by
Wood, he published, 1. “A threefold resolution necessary to salvation, &c.
” Loud. Justification of kneeling at the Sacrament,
” ibid. 16!9,
8vo. 3. “On the two Sacraments, Baptism and the
Lord’s Supper,
” ibid. De confessionis auricularis vanitate, adversus Card. Bellarmini sophismata,
” Oxon.
, a poet, a political writer, and a critic, was born in the city of London in 1657. His father
, a poet, a political writer, and a critic, was born in the city of London in 1657. His father was a sadler, and a citizen of reputation who determining to give him a liberal education, sent him to Harrow-on-theHill, where he received his grammatical instruction under Dr. William Horn, a school-master in high esteem for piety and literature. In the eighteenth year of his age he was removed to the university of Cambridge, where he was entered of Caius college, January 13, 1675, and continued there till he took his bachelor’s degree in 1679; after which he became a member of Trinity-hall, and in 1683, was admitted to the degree of master of arts. It is related, by the author of the Biographia Dramatica, that he was expelled from college, for literally attempting to stab a person in the dark, which, has been since confirmed by Dr. Farmer, by an extract from the Gesta book of Caius college: by this it appears that he was expelled March 4, 1680, for assaulting and wounding one Glenham with a sword. This accounts for his removing to Trinity hall.
As a dramatic writer, his first performance was a comedy, entitled “A Plot and no
As a dramatic writer, his first performance was a comedy,
entitled “A Plot and no Plot, or Jacobite Credulity,
”
acted at the theatre royal in Drury-laue, in Rinaldo and Armida,
” a tragedy, acted at Lincoln’s-inn Fields, in Iphigenia,
” was produced by our author in Iphigenia,
” a comedy of Mr. Dennis’s, which
was produced by him in 1702, was somewhat more successful at the theatre. The title of it is, “The Comical Gallant, with the Amours of Sir John Falstaff,
” a very indifferent alteration of Shakspeare’s “Merry Wives of Windsor.
” When it was published, a large essay was added of
taste in poetry, and the causes of its degeneracy.
On Mr. Dennis’s character as a political writer it is not necessary to enlarge. It is probable that, in this
On Mr. Dennis’s character as a political writer it is not
necessary to enlarge. It is probable that, in this capacity,
he may have been the author of several tracts, which are
now forgotten, and with regard to which there would be
no utility in endeavouring to rescue them from oblivion. In
his select works are inserted the productions of this kind
which he himself thought of the most consequence, and
the most worthy of preservation. The first of them was
published in 1702, and is an answer to a discourse of the
famous Henry Sacheverell, called “The Political Union.' 7
Dennis’s piece is entitled
” Priestcraft dangerous to Religion and Government;“and is a defence of low-church
principles and toleration. In 1703 he printed
” A Proposal
for putting a speedy End to the War, by ruining the commerce of the French and Spaniards, and securing our own,
without any additional expence to the uation.“The scheme
was, to form such a junction of the English and Dutch
fleets, and such a combination and disposition of a large
number of smaller armed vessels, as should effectually
carry into execution the purpose intended. Our author
has explained his project with sufficient ingenuity; but,
like many other projects which voluntary politicians have
been so ready to contrive for the public good, it met with
no degree of regard. Indeed, the views and measures of
die then subsisting ministry were more directed to exertions by land than at sea. In 1711 he produced
” An.
Essay upon Public Spirit; being a Satire, in prose, upon
the manners and luxury of the times, the chief sources of
our present parties and divisions," a violent and not very
judicious declamation against the vices of his own age, in
contrast with the virtues of our remote ancestors.
e has been ascribed to him with too much shew of reason; though perhaps it belonged to him more as a writer than as a man. In a letter to a friend he has endeavoured to
The character of Mr. Dennis must in general be sufficiently apparent from what has already been said. Illnature has been ascribed to him with too much shew of reason; though perhaps it belonged to him more as a writer than as a man. In a letter to a friend he has endeavoured to vindicate himself from the charge; but not, we think, with entire success. This at least is certain, from several transactions, that he was very irritable in his temper. Till he was five and forty, he was intimately conversant with the first men of the age, both with respect to rank and abilities; and when he retired from the world, he continued to preserve some honourable connections. Such was the estimation in which he was held, that he experienced the patronage of gentlemen whose political principles were extremely different from his own. George Granville, esq. in particular, afterwards lord Lansdowne, behaved to him with distinguished generosity, as did the earl of Pembroke, bishop Atterbury, and sir Robert Walpole.
s, entitled “Religions retirement for one day in every month,” from the original of Gother, a popish writer. This he undertook “to free from the peculiarities of the Romish
, a clergyman who is entitled to a
place in this Dictionary, as having been a contributor to
the first edition of it, was born at Sebergbam, in Cumberland, of an ancient family, in 1724, and was educated
under the rev. Josiah Ralph, of whose poems he superintended a handsome edition published by subscription.
From school he went to Queen’s-college, Oxford, when
be took his master’s degree June 16, 1752. On leaving
college, he became curate to the rev. Dr. Graham, of Netherby, at Arthuret, and Kirkandrews; and here he printed
a local poem, entitled “Gariston,
” which is now scarce a
as he only circulated a few copies among his friends. In
1753, Dr. Graham removed him to be his curate at Ashted,
in Surrey, in which living, upon the doctor’s resignation,
Mr. Demon succeeded him. He died here June 27, 1777,
leaving three sons and four daughters. As he had had no
opportunity to make much provision for this family, the
late lord Suffolk generously gave his widow the next presentation to the living, which bounty was so well managed
by a judicious friend, as to secure a very comfortable annuity to her and her children. Mr. Denton was a man of
unassuming, modest manners; serene and placid, rather
than cheerful; and a facetious man, rather than a man of
humour. In discharging the duties of his profession, he
was exemplarily decent, and his parishioners loved him
when living, and lamented him dead. Early in life he reformed, and published a very useful manual of devotions,
entitled “Religions retirement for one day in every month,
”
from the original of Gother, a popish writer. This he undertook “to free from the peculiarities of the Romish
church, and to fit it for the use of Protestants.
” He is,
however, better known by two well-written poems, “Immortality, or the Consolation of human life, a Monody,
”
printed separately in 4to, The House of Superstition,
” a vision, Lives of the Reformers.
” In both he has
proved himself no unsuccessful imitator of the style of
Spenser. He also compiled the supplemental volume to
the first edition of the Biographical Dictionary, in which
the lives are given with equal candour and accuracy.
, a French writer, who might have been an able coadjutor, in the cause of infidelity,
, a French
writer, who might have been an able coadjutor, in the
cause of infidelity, to the D'Alemberts, Diderots, and Voltaires of France, was born at Pondicherry in 1690. His
father, who resided here, was a director of the French
East India company, and died at St. Domingo in the office
of commissary-general of the marine. He was the author
of a work entitled “Remarques historiques, critiques, et
satiriques d'un cosmopolite,
” printed by his son at Nantes,
although Cologne is on the title, 1731, 12mo. His son,
the object of this article, became commissary-general of
the marine at Rochefort and Brest, and a member of the
royal academy of Berlin. These employments and honours
he resigned in his latter days, and died at Paris in 1757.
In 1713 he came to London, for what reason we have not
been able to discover, where he was seized with the small
pox. In that year he published in London his “Litteraturn Otium,
” in which he has very successfully imitated
Catullus. He had previously printed at Paris his “Reflexions sur les grands homines qui sont morts en plaisautant,
” which was immediately translated by Boyer, and
published at London under the title of “A Philological
Essay, or Reflections on the death of Freethinkers, with
the characters of the most eminent persons of both sexes,
ancient and modern, that died pleasantly and unconcerned,
” Histoire critique de la Philosophic,
” 4 vols. 12mo, the first
three published at Amsterdam in 1737. In this, which is
poor in respect of style, and not to be depended on in
point of fact, he grossly misrepresents the opinions of the
philosophers in order to accommodate them to his own.
2. “Kssai snr la Marine et le Commerce,
” which was translated and published at London, under the title, “Essay on
Maritime Power and Commerce,
” Recueil de differents traites de physique et d'histoire naturelle,
” 3 vols.
12mo, an useful collection. 4. “Histoire de Constance,
minister de Siam,
” Pygmalion,
” 12mo; “Fortune,
” 12mo;
“La Comtesse de Montserrat,
” 12mo; all of the licentious
kind.
ls. 12mo. His intimacy and friendship for St. Evremond led him to publish the life and works of that writer, in 1709, 3 vols. 4to and 8vo, often reprinted and translated
, a
fellow of the royal society of London, was born in
Auvergne, in France, in 1666, and was the son of a protestant clergyman. He came over in his youth to England,
and appears to have led the life of a man of letters, continually employed in composing or editing literary works.
In 1720 he was elected F. R. S. and from his numerous
letters in the British Museum, appears to have carried on
a very extensive correspondence with the learned men of
his time, especially St. Evremont and Bayle. He died at
London in June 1745. Bayle he assisted with many articles
and remarks for his Dictionary, and published his “Letters
” at Amsterdam, Nouvelles Lettres de Pierre
Bayle,
” Hague, Recueii
de diverses pieces sur la philosophic, la religion naturelle,
l'histoire, les mathematiques, &c.
” by Leibnitz, Clarke,
Newton, and others; Amst. 2 vols. 12mo. He appears
likewise to have been the editor of the “Scaligerana,
Thuana, Perroniana, Pithoeana, et Colomesiana,
” Amst.
Bibliotlieque Raisonnæ
” and “The Republic of Letters.
”
, a French dramatic and miscellaneous writer, a member of the national institute, the philotechnic society,
, a French dramatic and miscellaneous writer, a
member of the national institute, the philotechnic society,
that of letters, sciences, and arts, and of the Athenaeum at
Paris, was born at Villers-Coterets, March 11, 1760. After
studying with assiduous application and success at the
college of Lisieux, he for some years followed the profession of an advocate, which he then quitted to give up his
whole time to general literature and a country life. In
this retreat he wrote the greater part of his published
works, and was meditating others, when death snatched
him away at the age of thirty-eight, March 2, 1801. He
died in the arms of his mother, to whom he was exceedingly attached, and often mentioned, with tender regard,
how much her company had contributed to his happiness.
Nor was he less happy in the society of some friends of his
youth, whose affection he preserved to the last by his
amiable disposition. He published, 1. “Lettres a Emilie
sur la Mythologie,
” Le Conciliateur.
” 3. “Le Siege de Cythere,
” a poem, La Liberte du Cloitre,
” a
poem. He left several manuscripts, among which the
“Cours de morale, addresse aux Femmes,
” a work partly
in prose, and partly in verse, read at the Lycasum, is highly
praised. He had also begun a long work which was to
have been entitled “Galerie du dixhuitieme Siecle,
” in
which the great characters that illustrated the close of the
reign of Louis XIV. were to have been pourtrayed; but he
had composed only some parts of this work, which were
read in some of the literary societies, of which he was a
member.
, an eminent French dramatic writer, was born at Tours, in 1680, of a reputable family, which he
, an eminent French
dramatic writer, was born at Tours, in 1680, of a reputable
family, which he left early in life, apparently from being
thwarted in his youthful pursuits. This, however, has been
contradicted; and it is said that after having passed through
the rudiments of a literary education at Tours, he went,
with the full concurrence of his father, to Paris, in order to
complete his studies; that being lodged with a bookseller in
the capital, he fell in love at sixteen with a young person,
the relation of his landlord, the consequences of which amour
were such, that young Destouches, afraid to face them, enlisted as a common soldier in a regiment under orders for
Spain; that he was present at the siege of Barcelona, where
he narrowly escaped the fate of almost the whole company
to which he belonged, who were buried under a mine sprung
by the besieged. What became of him afterwards, to the
time of his being noticed by the marquis de Puysieulx, is
not certainly known, but the common opinion was, that he
had appeared as a player on the stage; and having for a
long time dragged his wretchedness from town to town,
was at length manager of a company of comedians at Soleure, when the marquis de Puysieulx, ambassador from
France to Switzerland, obtained some knowledge of him
by means of an harangue which the young actor made him
at the head of his comrades. The marquis, habituated by
his diplomatic function to discern and appreciate characters,
judged that one who could speak so well, was destined by
nature to something better than the representation of
French comedies in the centre of Switzerland. He requested a conference with Destouches, sounded him on
various topics, and attached him to his person. It was in
Switzerland that his talent for theatrical productions first
displayed itself; and his “Curieux Impertinent
” was exhibited there with applause. His dramatic productions
made him known to the regent, who sent him to London
in 1717, to assist, in his political capacity, at the negotiations then on foot, and while resident here, he had a
singular negociation to manage for cardinal Dubois, to
whom, indeed, he was indebted for his post. That minister directed him to engage king George I. to ask for
him the archbishopric of Cambray, from the regent duke
of Orleans. The king, who was treating with the regent
on affairs of great consequence, and whom it was the interest of the latter to oblige, could not help viewing this
request in a ridiculous light. “How!
” said he to Destouches, “would you have a protestant prince interfere
in making a French archbishop? The regent will only
laugh at it, and certainly will pay no regard to such an application.
” “Pardon me, sire,
” replied Destouches, “he
will laugh, indeed, but he will do what you desire.
” He
then presented to the king a very pressing letter, ready
for signature. “With all my heart, then,
” said the king,
and signed the letter; and Dubois became archbishop of
Cambray. He spent seven years in London, married there,
and returned to his country; where the dramatist and
negociator were well received. The regent had a just
sense of his services, and promised him great things; but
dying soon after, left Destouches the meagre comfort of
reflecting how well he should have been provided for if
the regent had lived. Having lost his patron, he retired
to Fortoiseau, near Melun, as the properest situation to
make him forget the caprices of fortune. He purchased
the place; and cultivating agriculture, philosophy, and
the muses, abode there as long as he lived. Cardinal
Fleury would fain have sent him ambassador to Petersburg;
but Destouches chose rather to attend his lands and his
woods, to correct with his pen the manners of his own
countrymen; and to write, which he did with considerable
effect, against the infidels of France. He died in 1754,
leaving a daughter and a son; the latter, by order of
Lewis XV. published at the Louvre an edition of his father’s
works, in 4 vols. 4to. Destouch.es had not the gaiety of
Regnard, nor the strong warm colouring of Moliere; but
he is always polite, tender, and natural, and has been
thought worthy of ranking next to these authors. He deserves more praise by surpassing them in the morality and
decorum of his pieces, and he had also the art of attaining
the pathetic without losing the vis comica, which is the
essential character of this species of composition. In the
various connections of domestic life, he maintained a truly
respectable character, and in early life he gave evidence
of his filial duty, by sending 40,000 livres out of his savings
to his father, who was burthened with a large family.
It was as a prose- writer that the earl of Essex excelled, and not as a poet. He is said
It was as a prose-writer that the earl of Essex excelled,
and not as a poet. He is said to have translated one of Ovid’s
Epistles; and a few of his sonnets are preserved in the
Ashmolean museum. They display, however, no marks
of poetic genius. “But if Essex,
” says Mr. Warton, “was
no poet, few noblemen of his age were more courted by
poets. From Spenser to the lowest rhymer he was the subject of numerous sonnets, or popular ballads. I will not
except Sydney. I could produce evidence to prove, that
he scarcely ever went out of England, or even left London,
on the most frivolous enterprize, without a pastoral in his
praise, or a panegyric in metre, which were sold and sung
in the streets. Having interested himself in the fashionable
poetry of the times, he was placed high in the ideal Arcadia now just established; and, among other instances
which might be brought, on his return from Portugal in
1589 he was complimented with a poem called
” An Egloge
gratulatorie entituled to the right honorable and renowned
shepherd of Albion’s Arcadia, Robert earl of Essex, and
for his returne lately into England.“This is a light in
which lord Essex is seldom viewed. I know not if the
queen’s fatal partiality, or his own inherent attractions,
his love of literature, his heroism, integrity, and generosity, qualities which abundantly overbalance his presumption, his vanity, and impetuosity, had the greater share
in dictating these praises. If adulation were any where
justifiable, it must be when paid to the man who endeavoured to save Spenser from starving in the streets of
Dublin, and who buried him in Westminster-abbey with
becoming solemnity. Spenser was persecuted by Burleigh
because he was patronised by Essex.
”
, a learned physician, and voluminous writer on medicine and natural philosophy, was born at Meurs, in the
, a learned physician, and
voluminous writer on medicine and natural philosophy, was
born at Meurs, in the duchy of Juliers, October 16th,
4612. After studying the classics and the Arabic and
Persian languages, he went to Leyden, where he completed his education by taking the degree of M. D. in
1634; and three years after was appointed professor in
mathematics at Meurs. In 1639, he was called to succeed
Isaac Pontanus in the chair of natural philosophy and mathematics; and in 1642 to that of medicine, at Hardenvick,
to which was added the office of physician to the city.
From Harderwick he went to Groningen, where he was not
only professor of medicine, but rector of the university,
and ancient of the church. Amid the business which such
accumulated duties heaped upon him, he found leisure to
write a greater number of treatises on the different parts of
medicine and philosophy than have fallen from the pen.
of almost any other man. Haller and Manget have given
a list of fifty-four, but a small number of these are on practical subjects, many of them being metaphysical and
controversial. Those relating to his controversy with Silvius, are written with great acrimony; though the subjects, which are mostly physiological, do not seem calculated to excite so much rancour as we see infused into
them. Among these are, “Joannes Cloppenburgius,
Heautontimorumenos, seu retorsio injuriarum de libello
falsidico, cui titulus, Res judicata, cumulatarum,
”
light, among other epistles to that learned prelate, drew upon him the heaviest censures. Smith, the writer of the Latin life of Camden, assures us, that his” Britannia“was
Though these labours of sir Symonds contributed not a
little to illustrate the general history of Great Britain, as
well as to explain the important transactions of one of the
most glorious reigns in it, yet two or three circumstances
of his life have occasioned him to have been set by writers
in perhaps a more disadvantageous light than he deserved;
not to mention that general one, common to many others,
of adhering to the parliament during the rebellion. Having occasion to write to archbishop Usher in 1639, he unfortunately let fall a hint to the prejudice of Camden’s
*' Britannia;“for, speaking of the time and pains he had
spent in collecting materials for an accurate history of
Great Britain, and of his being principally moved to this
task, by observing the many mistakes of the common
writers, he adds,
” And indeed what can be expected from
them, considering that, even in the so much admired
‘Britannia’ of Camden himself, there is not a page, at
least hardly a page, without errors?“This letter of his
afterwards coming to light, among other epistles to that
learned prelate, drew upon him the heaviest censures.
Smith, the writer of the Latin life of Camden, assures us,
that his
” Britannia“was universally approved by all
proper judges, one only, sir Symonds D'Ewes, excepted;
who,
” moved,“says he,
” by I know not what spirit of
envy, gave out that there was scarce a page,“&c. Nicolson, in his account of Camden’s work, says, that
” some
early attempts were made by an envious person, one Brook
or Brookmouth, to blast the deservedly great reputation of
this work but they perished and came to nothing; as did
likewise the terrible threats given out by sir Symonds
D'Ewes, that he would discover errors in every page.“Bishop Gibson has stated the charge against this gentleman more mildly, in his Life of Camden, prefixed to the
English translation of his Britannia.
” In the year says the bishop,
” he put the last hand to his Britannia,
which gained him the titles of the Varro, Strabo, and Pausanias of Britain, in the writings and letters of other
learned men. Nor did it ever after meet with any enemies
that I know of, only sir Symonds D‘Ewes encouraged us
to hope for animadversions upon the work, after he had
observed to a very great man, that there was not a page in
it without a fault. But it was only threatening; and neither the world was the better, nor was Mr. Camden’s reputation e’er the worse for it." Sir Symonds was certainly
not defensible for throwing out at random, as it should
seem, such a censure against a work universally well received, without ever attempting to support it; yet some
have excused him by saying that this censure was contained
in a private letter; and that sir Symonds had a high sense
of Camden’s merit, whom he mentions very respectfully in
the preface to his Journals, &c.
original was very probably, as we have just hinted, forged under the name of Dictys, a traditionary writer on the subject, in the reign of Nero. The best editions of Dictys
, is the supposed name of a very ancient historian, who, serving under Idomeneus, a king of Crete, in the Trojan war, wrote the history of that expeilition in nine books; and Tzetzes tells us, that Homer formed his Iliad upon his plan: but the Latin history of Dictys, which we have at present, is altogether spurious. There are two anonymous writers still extant, who pretend to have written of the Trojan war previously to Homer, one of whom goes under the name of Dictys Cretensis, the other that of Dares Phrygius, of which last we have already taken some notice. Before the history of Dictys there are two prefaces the first of which relates that Dictys wrote six volumes of the Trojan war in the Phœnician characters; and in his old age, after he was returned to his own country, ordered them, a little before his death, to be buried with him in a leaden chest or repository, which was accordingly done; that, however, after many ages, and under the reign of Nero, an earthquake happened at Cnosus, a city of Crete, which uncovered Dictys’s sepulchre, and exposed the chest; that the shepherds took it up, and expecting a treasure, opened it; and that, finding this history, they sent it to Nero, who ordered it to be translated, or rather transcharactered, from Phoenician into Greek. It has been inferred from this story that the history was forged by some of Nero’s flatterers, as he always affected a fondness for any thing relating to Trojan antiquities. The other preface to Dictys is an epistle of L. Septimius, the Latin translator, in which he inscribes it to Arcadius Kuffinus, who was consul in the reign of Constantino; and tells nearly the same story of the history we have already related. That the present Latin Dictys had a Greek original, now lost, appears from the numerous Grecisms with which it abounds; and from the literal correspondence of many passages with the Greek fragments of one Dictys cited by ancient authors. The Greek original was very probably, as we have just hinted, forged under the name of Dictys, a traditionary writer on the subject, in the reign of Nero. The best editions of Dictys and Dares Phrygius, are that of madame Dacier, Paris, 1680, 4to, and that of Smids, 4to and 8vo, Anist. 1702, 2 volumes.
, of the academy of Berlin, an eminent French writer, was the son of a cutler, and was bora at Langres, in 1713.
, of the academy of Berlin, an eminent French writer, was the son of a cutler, and was bora
at Langres, in 1713. The Jesuits, with whom he went
through a course of study, were desirous of having him in
their order, and one of his uncles designing him for a canonry which he had in his gift, made him take the tonsure. But his father, seeing that he was not inclined to
be either a Jesuit or a canon, sent him to Paris to prosegute his studies. He then placed him with a lawyer, to
whose instructions young Diderot paid little attention, but
employed himself in general literature, which not coinciding with the views of his father, he stopped the remittance of his pecuniary allowance, and seemed for some
time to have abandoned him. The talents of the young
man, however, supplied him with a maintenance, and
gradually made him known. He had employed his mind
on physics, geometry, metaphysics, ethics, belles-lettres,
from the time he began to read with reflection, and although a bold and elevated imagination seemed to give him
a turn for poetry, he neglected it for the more serious
sciences. He settled at an early period at Paris, where
the natural eloquence which animated his conversation
procured him friends and patrons. What first gave him
reputation among a certain class of readers, unfortunately for France, too numerous in that country, was
a little collection of “Pensees philosophiques,
” reprinted
afterwards under the title of “Etrennes aux esprits-forts.
”
This book appeared in Pensees de Pascal.
” But
the aim of the two authors was widely different. Pascal
employed his talents, and erudition, which was profound
and various, in support of the truths of religion, which
Diderot attacked by all the arts of an unprincipled sophist.
The “Pensées philosophiques,
” however, became a toiletbook. The author was thought to be always in the right,
because he always dealt in assertions. Diderot was more
usefully employed in 1746, in publishing a “Dictionnaire
universelle de Medecine,
” with Messrs. Eidous and Toussaint, in G vols. folio. Not that this compilation, says his
biographer, is without its defects in many points of view,
or that it contains no superficial and inaccurate articles;
but it is not without examples of deep investigation; and
the work was well received. A more recent account, however, informs us that this was merely a translation of Dr.
James’s Medical Dictionary, published in this country in
1743; and that Diderot was next advised to translate
Chambers’ s Dictionary; but instead of acting so inferior a
part, he conceived the project of a more extensive undertaking, the “Dictionnaire Encyclopedique.
” So great a
monument not being to be raised by a single architect,
D'Alembert, the friend of Diderot, shared with him the
honours and the dangers of the enterprise, in which they
were promised the assistance of several literati, and a variety of artists. Diderot took upon himself alone the description of arts and trades, one of the most important
parts, and most acceptable to the public. To the particulars of the several processes of the workmen, he sometimes added reflections, speculations, and principles
adapted to their elucidation. Independently of the part
of arts and trades, this chief of the encyclopedists furnished in the different sciences a considerable number of
articles that were wanting; but even his countrymen are
inclined to wish that in a work of such a vast extent, and
of such general use, he had learned to compress his matter, and had been less verbose, less of the dissertator, and
less inclined to digressions. He has also been censured for
employing needlessly a scientific language, and for having
recourse to metaphysical doctrines, frequently unintelligible, which occasioned him to be called the Lycophron.
of philosophy; for having introduced a number of definitions incapable of enlightening the ignorant, and which
he seems to have invented for no other purpose than to
have it thought that he had great ideas, while in fact, he
had not the art of expressing perspicuously and simply
the ideas of others. As to the body of the work, Diderot
himself agreed that the edifice wanted an entire reparation; and when two booksellers intended to give a new
edition of the Encyclopedic, he thus addressed them on
the subject of the faults with which it abounds: “The
imperfection of this work originated in a great variety of
causes. We had not time to be very scrupulous in the
choice of the coadjutors. Among some excellent persons,
there were others weak, indifferent, and altogether bad.
Hence that motley appearance of the work, where we see
the rude attempt of a school-boy by the side of a piece
from the hand of a master; and a piece of nonsense next
neighbour to a sublime performance. Some working for
no pay, soon lost their first fervour; others badly recompensed, served us accordingly. The Encyclopedic was a
gulf into which all kinds of scribblers promiscuously threw
their contributions: their pieces were ill-conceived, and
worse digested; good, bad, contemptible, true, false, uncertain, and always incoherent and unequal; the references
that belonged to the very parts assigned to a person, were
never filled up by him. A refutation is often found where
we should naturally expect a proof; and there was no exact
correspondence between the letter-press and the plates.
To remedy this defect, recourse was had to long explications. But how many unintelligible machines, for want
of letters to denote the parts!
” To this sincere confession Diderot added particular details on various parts; such
as proved that there were in the Encyclopedic subjects
to be not only re-touched, but to be composed afresh;
and this was what a new company of literati and artists undertook, but have not yet completed. The first edition,
however, which had been delivering to the public from
1751 to 1767, was soon sold off, because its defects were
compensated in part by many well-executed articles, and
because uncommon pains were taken to recommend it to
the public.
, of Alexandria, was an ecclesiastical writer of the fourth century, who supplied a very important defect
, of Alexandria, was an ecclesiastical writer
of the fourth century, who supplied a very important defect by dint of genius and application. Jerome and Ruffinus assure us that though he lost his eyes at five years of
age, when he had scarcely learned to read, yet he applied
himself so earnestly to study, that he not only attained in
a high degree grammar, rhetoric, logic, arithmetic, music,
and the other arts, but even was able to comprehend some
of the most difficult theorems in mathematics. He was
particularly attached to the study of the Scriptures; and
was selected as the most proper person to fill the chair in
the famous divinity-school at Alexandria. His high reputation drew a great number of scholars to him; among
the principal of whom were Jerome, Ruffinus, Palladius,
and Isidorus. He read lectures with wonderful facility,
answered upon the spot all questions and difficulties relating to the Holy Scriptures, and refuted the objections
which were raised against the orthodox faith. He was the
author of a great number of works of which Jerome has
preserved the titles in his catalogue of ecclesiastical writers;
and of many more whose titles are not known. We have
yet remaining a Latin translation of his book upon the Holy
Spirit, to be found in the works of Jerome, who was the
translator; and which is perhaps the best treatise the
Christian world ever saw upon the subject. Whatever has
been said since that time, in defence of the divinity and
personality of the Holy Ghost, seems, in substance, to be
foand in this book. His other works extant are, a treatise
against the Manichees, in the original Greek, and “Enarrations upon the seven catholic epistles in Latin,
” and in
the Greek Chains are fragments of some of his commentaries. J. C. Wolff, of Hamburgh, published a large collection of notes and observations of Didymus upon the Acts
of the Apostles, taken from a manuscript Greek chain, at
Oxford. See Wolfii Anecdot. Graec. 1724. Didymus
also wrote commentaries upon Origen’s books of Principles, which he defended very strenuously against all
opposers. He was a great admirer of Origen, used to consider him as his master, and adopted many of his
sentiments; on which account he was condemned by the fifth
general council. He died in the year 395, aged eightyfive years.
f quackery scarcely credible, yet it was practised by sir Kenelm, and his patient Howell, the letter- writer, and believed by many at that time. The virtues of this powder,
, who once enjoyed the reputation of a philosopher, the eldest son of sir Everard Digby,
was born at Gothurst in Buckinghamshire, June 11, 1603.
At the time of his father’s death, he was with his mother at
Gothurst, being then in the third year of his age: but he
seems to have been taken early out of her hands, since it
is certain that he renounced the errors of popery very
young, and was carefully bred up in the protestant religion,
under the direction, as it is supposed, of archbishop Laud,
then dean of Gloucester. Some have said, that king James
restored his estate to him in his infancy; but this is an
error; for it was decided by law that the king had no right
to it. About 1618 he was admitted a gentleman-commoner of Gloucester-hall, now Worcester college, in Oxford; where he soon discovered such strength of natural
abilities, and such a spirit of penetration, that his tutor,
who was a man of parts and learning, used to compare him,
probably for the universality of his genius, to the celebrated Picus de Mirandula. After having continued at
Oxford between two and three years, and having raised
the highest expectations of future eminence, he made the
tour of France, Spain, and Italy, and returned to England
in 1623; in which year he was knighted by the king, to
whom he was presented at the lord Montague’s house at
Hinchinbroke, October 23. Soon after, he rendered himself remarkable by the application of a secret he met with
in his travels, which afterwards made so much noise in
the world under the title of the “Sympathetic Powder,
”
by which wounds were to be cured, although the patient
was out of sight, a piece of quackery scarcely credible,
yet it was practised by sir Kenelm, and his patient Howell,
the letter-writer, and believed by many at that time. The
virtues of this powder, as himself assures us, were thoroughly inquired into by king James, his son the prince of
Wales, the duke of Buckingham, with other persons of
the highest distinction, and all registered among the observations of the great chancellor Bacon, to be added by
way of appendix to his lordship’s Natural History; but
this is not strictly true; for lord Bacon never published
that Appendix, although he does give a story nearly as
absurd.
istinctly as he ought, and, what is yet very much to his honour, that he is perhaps the only correct writer in verse before Addison; and that, if there are not so many
We must allow of Roscommon, what Fenton has not mentioned so distinctly as he ought, and, what is yet very much to his honour, that he is perhaps the only correct writer in verse before Addison; and that, if there are not so many or so great beauties in his compositions as in those of some contemporaries, there are at least fewer faults. Nor is this his highest praise; for Pope has celebrated him as the only moral writer of king Charles’s reign
, &c. and, as to what relates to the apotheosis, or consecration of emperors, perhaps he is the only writer who has given us a good account of it, if we except Ilerodian,
Though all that is lost of this historian is much to be regretted, yet that is most so which contains the history of
the forty last years; for within this period he was an eyewitness of all that passed, and a principal actor in a great
part. Before the reign of Commodus, he could relate
nothing but what he had from the testimony of others;
after that, every thing fell under his own cognizance; and
a man of his quality, who had spent his life in the management of great affairs, and had read men as well as books,
must have had many advantages in delineating the history
of his own times; and it is even now allowed, that no man
has revealed more of those state-secrets, which Tacitus
styles arcana imperii, and of which he makes so high a
mystery. He is also very exact and full in his descriptions,
in describing the order of the comitia, the establishing of
magistrates, &c. and, as to what relates to the apotheosis,
or consecration of emperors, perhaps he is the only writer
who has given us a good account of it, if we except Ilerodian, who yet seemh to have been greatly indebted to him.
Besides his descriptions, there are several of his speeches,
which have been highly admired; those particularly of
Maecenas and Agrippa, upon the question, whether Augustus should resign the empire or no. Yet he has been
exceedingly blamed for his partiality, which to some has
appeared so great, as almost to invalidate the credit of
his whole history; of those parts at least, where he can be
supposed to have been the least interested. The instances
alleged are his partiality for Ciesar against Pompey, for
Antony against Cicero, and his strong prejudices against
Seneca. “The obvious cause of the prejudice which Dio
had conceived against Cicero,
” Dr. Middleton supposes
“to have been his envy to a man who for arts and eloquence was thought to eclipse the fame of Greece-; 11 but
he adds another reason, not less probable, deducible from
Dio’s character and principles, which were wholly opposite to those of Cicero.
” For Dio,“as he says,
” flourished under the most tyrannical of the emperors, by whom
he was advanced to great dignity; and, being the creature
of despotic power, thought it a proper compliment to it,
to depreciate a name so highly revered for its patriotism,
and whose writings tended to revive that ancient zeal and
spirit of liberty for which the people of Rome were once
so celebrated: for we find him taking all occasions in his
history, to prefer an absolute and monarchical government to a free and democratical one, as the most beneficial to the Roman state."
ect what they thought the best. His books shew him to have been a man of universal reading; but as a writer he is very exceptionable, both as to the disposal and the defect
, so called from Laerta, or
Laertes, a town of Cilicia, where he is supposed to have
been born, is an ancient Greek author, who wrote ten books
of the Lives of the Philosophers, still extant. In what age
he flourished, is not easy to determine. The oldest writers
who mention him are Sopater Alexandrinus, who lived
in the time of Constantine the Great, and Hesychius Milesius, who lived under Justinian. Diogenes often speaks in
terms of approbation of Plutarch and Phavorinus; and therefore, as Plutarch lived under Trajan, and Phavorinus under
Hadrian, it is certain that he could not flourish before the
reigns of those emperors. Menage has fixed him to the time
of Severus; that is, about the year of Christ 200; and
from certain expressions in his works, some have fancied
him to have been a Christian; however, as Menage observes, the immoderate praises he bestows upon Epicurus
will not suffer us to believe this, but incline us rather to
suppose that he was an Epicurean. He divided his Lives
into books, and inscribed them to a learned lady of the
Platonic school, as he himself intimates in his life of Plato.
Montaigne was so fond of this author, that, instead of one
Laertius, he wishes we had a dozen; and Vossius says, that
his work is as precious as old gold. Without doubt we are
greatly obliged to him for what we know of the ancient
philosophers; and if he had been as exact in the execution, as he was judicious in the choice of his subject, we
had been more obliged to him still. Bishop Burnet, in the
preface to his Life of sir Matthew Hale, justly speaks of
him in the following manner: “There is no hook the ancients have left us,
” says he, “which might have informed
us more than Diogenes Laertius’s Lives of the Philosophers,
if he had had the art of writing equal to that great subject
which he undertook: for if he had given the world such an
account of them, as Gassendus has done of Peiresc, how
great a stock of knowledge might we have had, which by
his unskilfulness is in a great measure lost! since we must
now depend only on him, because we have no other and
better author who has written on that argument.
” He is
no where observed to be a rigid affecter or favourer of any
sect; which makes it somewhat probable, that he was a
follower of Potomon of Alexandria, who, after all the rest,
and a little before his time, established a sect which were
called Eclectics, from their choosing out of every sect what
they thought the best. His books shew him to have been
a man of universal reading; but as a writer he is very exceptionable, both as to the disposal and the defect of his
materials. Brucker, whose opinion must be of sterling
value, in estimating the merits of Diogenes Laertius, says,
that “he has collected from the ancients with little judgment, patched together contradictory accounts, relied
upon doubtful authorities, admitted as facts many tales
which were produced in the schools of the sophists, and
has been inattentive to methodical arrangement.
” Diogenes also composed a book of epigrams, to which he refers. The best edition is that of Meibomius, Amst. 1692,
2 vols. 4to; yet Rossius, in his “Commentationes Laertianae,
” has convicted Meibomius of innumerable errors.
, an eminent French surgeon and writer, was born at Paris, and became surgeon in ordinary to Maria
, an eminent French surgeon and writer, was born at Paris, and became surgeon in ordinary to
Maria Teresa of Austria, queen of France, and to the
dauphinesses and the royal family. These honours were
bestowed in consequence of the fame which he acquired as
lecturer in surgery and anatomy in the royal gardens at
Paris, an office founded by Louis XIV. He retained this
and his other offices with increasing reputation, until his
death, Dec. 11, 1718. His first publication was “Histoire
anatomique d'une matrice extraordinaire,
” Anatomic de l'homme suivant la circulation
du sang, et les nouvelles decouvertes,
” 8vo, an useful epitome, containing all that was then known on the subject.
It was well received, frequently reprinted, and was translated in 1718, into the Tartar language, by order of
Cam-hi, the emperor of China, for the benefit of his subjects. His next work, which first appeared in 1707, was
“Cours d'Operations de Chirurgie demontree, au Jardin
Royal de Paris,
” 8vo. This has been reprinted still more
frequently than the former work, and has been translated
into nearly all the modern languages. Heister gave an
edition of it in Latin, with notes, and it still retains a certain degree of credit. In 1709, he gave “Dissertation sur
la mort subite, avec l‘histoire d’une fille cataleptique,
”
12mo; and in Traite general des Accouchmens,
”
8vo. This also has been translated into most modern languages, though it contains little more than an abridgment
of the practice of Mauriceau, and is now almost entirely
unnoticed.
ysius junior left behind him; as testimonies are still remaining or his having been a much more able writer than Aristides Quintilianus.
, junior, flourished,
according to Suidas, under the emperor Adrian, and wrote
twenty-six books of the “History of Musicians,
” in which
he celebrated not only the great performers on the flute
and cithara, but those who had risen to eminence by every
species of poetry. He was, likewise, author of five books,
written in defence of music, and chiefly in refutation of
what is alleged against it in Plato’s Republic. Aristides
Quintilianus has also endeavoured to soften the severity
of some animadversions against music in the writings of
Cicero; but though time has spared the defence of this
author, yet it does not indemnify us for the loss of that
which Dionysius junior left behind him; as testimonies are
still remaining or his having been a much more able writer
than Aristides Quintilianus.
The loss of the entire works of this writer is severely felt by all musical historians, but particularly
The loss of the entire works of this writer is severely felt by all musical historians, but particularly by those who seek information concerning the music and musicians of the ancient Greeks.
l judicious and learned men, and forwarded by their ready answers to queries proposed to them by the writer, as occasion suggested them, and not unfrequently by their voluntary
He was a zealous advocate for, and a great friend to, the
religious societies (particularly that for the reformation of manners), then in their infancy. His temper was naturally
warm and impatient; but he was formed by nature also
with a generous and forgiving mind, and his warmth and
impatience were generally under the government of his
reason. His principles of religion were orthodox in regard to points of doctrine and articles of faith: in respect
to the principles of others, they were truly catholic. Mr.
Disney’s correspondence with some persons of high name
for literature in his age does honour to both parties. His
own learning was acknowledged, and the great work which
he had designed to have published, under the title of
“Corpus Legum de Moribus Reformandis,
” was greatly
approved by several judicious and learned men, and forwarded by their ready answers to queries proposed to them
by the writer, as occasion suggested them, and not unfrequently by their voluntary contributions. His own library
contained a very extensive and valuable collection of books
in all languages; but he spared not journies to the public
libraries in London, and both of our universities, for the
consultation of such scarce books and manuscripts as
were nowhere else to be met with. His manuscripts, which
are numerous, are preserved in his family, and his exactness and precision in their arrangement, and the fairness
of their transcript, are peculiar to himself.
of the talents of which the world was about to be deprived. For this purpose the pen of that eminent writer was employed in writing those papers and documents which, to
This wretched man was married so early as April 1751,
even before he was in orders, or had any certain means of
supporting himself; but his wife, “though largely endowed with personal attractions, was certainly deficient in
those of birth and fortune.
” She survived to the year 1784.
Dr. Dodd exhibits the most awful instance known in our
days of the miserable consequences of indulging habits of
gaiety and expence in a profession to which the world looks
for a more edifying example. His life, by his own confession, was for many years fearfully erroneous. But the
most remarkable part of his history was the uncommon interest excited in the public mind, and the numerous petitions presented to the throne in his favour. Even the
talents of Dr. Johnson were engaged to give a fair colouring to his case, and to combine with public sympathy a
high opinion of the talents of which the world was about
to be deprived. For this purpose the pen of that eminent
writer was employed in writing those papers and documents which, to be any thing, ought to have been written
by Dodd himself, but which, being immediately known to
be Johnson’s, could only be considered as a part of that
literary quackery which Dodd had so often practised. Dr.
Johnson appears indeed in this instance to have been more
swayed by popular judgment, than he would perhaps have
been willing to allow. The cry was, the honour of the
clergy; but if the honour of the clergy was tarnished, it
was by Dodd’s crime, and not his punishment; for his life
had been so long a disgrace to his cloth, that he had deprived himself of the sympathy which attaches to the first
deviation from rectitude, and few criminals could have had
less claim to such a display of popular feeling.
, an English poet and miscellaneous writer, was born at Mansfield, in Nottinghamshire, in 1703. His father
, an English poet and miscellaneous writer, was born at Mansfield, in Nottinghamshire, in 1703. His father is said to have kept the tree-school at Mansfield, a situation in which it is natural to suppose he could have bestowed some education on his children, yet it is not easy to reconcile this with the servile track of life into which they were obliged to enter. He is described as a little deformed man, who, after having a large family by his first wife, married at the age of seventy-five a young girl of only seventeen years, by whom he had a child. Of his sons, A Ivory lived many years, and died in the service of the late sir George Saville; Isaac was for some time gardener to Mr. Allen, of Prior-park, and afterwards to lord Weymouth, at Long-leat. In these two families he spent fifty-two years of his life; and has the credit of being the projector of some of the beautiful plantations at both those seats. He retired from Long-leat at the age of seventy-eight, and died about three years after. There was a third, John, whose name with that of Alvory, and of the father, is among the subscribers to our poet’s first publication. James, who was twenty-two years younger than Robert, will come to be mentioned hereafter; when he was taken into partnership. How he passed the preceding part of his time is not known. Of Robert, nothing is now remembered in his native town, but a traditional story, that he was put apprentice to a stocking-weaver of that place, and that, being almost starved, he ran away, and was hired by a lady as her footman: this lady, it is added, observing that he employed his leisure hours in reading, gave him every encouragement; and soon after he wrote an entertainment, which was shewn to Pope and others. Part of this story is probable, but too much of his history is crowded into it. His first service was not that of a lady, nor was the entertainment (The Toy-shop) his first production.
is own pen. By undertaking to pay Moore a stipulated sum for each paper, whether contributed by that writer, or sent by volunteers, J)odsley secured to himself the copyright,
About this time, he established, in conjunction with
Moore, a periodical paper, entitled “The World,
” a name
which Dodsley is allowed to have suggested after the other
partners had perplexed themselves in vain for a proper one.
Lord Lyttelton, although no contributor himself, used his
influence with his friends for that purpose, and Dodsley
procured papers from many of his friends and customers.
One paper only, No. 32, is acknowledged to come from
his own pen. By undertaking to pay Moore a stipulated
sum for each paper, whether contributed by that writer,
or sent by volunteers, J)odsley secured to himself the
copyright, and was amply repaid not only by its sale in.
single numbers, but by the many editions printed in volumes. When it was concluded in 1756, he obtained permission of the principal writers to insert their names, which
gave it an additional interest with the public. A few chose,
at that time, to remain concealed, who have since been
discovered, and some are yet unknown. Chesterfield and
Horace Walpole were known at the time of publication.
, a very learned writer, was born in the parish of St. Warburgh in Dublin, towards the
, a very learned writer, was born in the parish of St. Warburgh in Dublin, towards the latter end of October 1641, and baptized November 4th. His father, who was in the army, had an estate at Connaught, but it being seized by the Irish rebels, he came, with his wife and child, to England in 1648, to obtain some assistance among their relations. After some stay in London, they went to York, and placed their son in the free-school of that city, where he continued five years, and laid the foundation of his extensive learning. His father, after having settled him with his mother at York, went to Ireland, to look after his estate, but died of the plague at Waterford: and his mother, going thither for the same purpose, fell into a consumption, of which she died, in her brother sir Henry Slingsby’s house. Being thus deprived of his parents, Mr. Doduell was reduced to such streights that he had not money enough to buy pen, ink, and paper; and suffered very much for want of his board being regularly paid*. Thus he continued till 1654, when his uncle, Mr. Henry Dodvvell, rector of Newbourn
As a writer, Dogget has left behind him only one comedy, which has not been
As a writer, Dogget has left behind him only one comedy,
which has not been performed in its original state for many
years, entitled “The Country Wake, 1696,
” 4to. It has
been altered, however, into a ballad farce, which frequently makes its appearance under the title of “Flora
or, Hob in the Well.
”
, an eminent special pleader and law writer, was born in Ireland, and educated at a country school. He came
, an eminent special pleader
and law writer, was born in Ireland, and educated at a
country school. He came to England early in life, with
an able capacity and habits of industry, but without any
direct prospect of employment, or choice of profession.
He became, however, clerk to the late Mr. Bower, a very
profound lawyer, where, with assiduous study, he acquired
a knowledge of special pleading, and the law connected
with that abstruse science; and such was his diligence, that
in a comparatively short time, he accumulated a collection
of precedents and notes that appeared to his employer an
effort of great labour and ingenuity. After having been
many years with Mr. Bower, the latter advised him to commence special pleader, and in this branch of the profession
he soon acquired great reputation; his drafts, which were
generally the work of his own hand, being admired as
models of accuracy. They were formed according to the
neat and concise system of Mr. Bower, and his great friend
and patron sir Joseph Yates, many of whose books, notes,
and precedents, as well as those of sir Thomas Davenport,
Mr. Dogherty possessed. This intense application, however, greatly impaired his health, which was visibly on the
decline for many months before his decease. This event
took place at his chambers in Clifford’s-inn, Sept. 29, 1805,
and deprived the profession of a man of great private
worth, modest and unassuming manners, independent mind,
and strict honour and probity. Mr. Dogherty was the
author and editor of some valuable works on criminal law.
He published a new edition of the “Crown Circuit Companion;
” and an original composition, in The
Crown Circuit Assistant,
” which is a most useful supplement to the former. In 1800 he edited a new edition of
Hale’s “Historia Placitorum Coronae,
” in 2 vols. 8vo,
with an abridgment of the statutes relating to felonies,
continued to that date, and with notes and references.
His common-place and office-books, still in manuscript,
are said to be highly valuable.
, a most laborious Italian writer, was born at Venice in 1508. His family was one of the most
, a most laborious Italian writer, was
born at Venice in 1508. His family was one of the most
ancient in the republic, but reduced in circumstances.
Lewis remained the whole of his life in his native city,
occupied in his numerous literary undertakings, which
procured him some personal esteem, but little reputation
or wealth. Perhaps his best employment was that of cor-,
rector of the press to the celebrated printer Gabriel Giolito, whose editions are so much admired for the beauties
of type and paper, and yet with the advantage of Dolce’s
attention, are not so correct as could be wished. As an
original author, Dolce embraced the whole circle of polite
literature and science, being a grammarian, rhetorician,
orator, historian, philosopher, editor, translator, and commentator; and as a poet, he wrote tragedies, comedies,
epics, lyrics, and satires. All that can be called events
in his life, were some literary squabbles, particularly with
Ruscelli, who was likewise a corrector of Giolito’s press.
He died of a dropsical complaint in 1569, according to
Apostolo Zeno, and, according to Tiraboschi, in 1566.
Baillet, unlike most critics, says he was one of the best
writers of his age. His style is flowing, pure, and elegant;
but he was forced by hunger to spin out his works, and to
neglect that frequent revisal which is so necessary to the
finishing of a piece. Of his numerous works, a list of
which may be seen in Niceron, or Moreri, the following
are in some reputation: 1. “Dialogo della pittura, intitolato I'Aretino,
” Venice, Cinque priini canti del Sacripante,
” Vinegia^
Primaleone,
” Achilles; 1 *
and
” Jineas,“1570, 4to. 5.
” La prima imprese del
conte Orlando," 1572, 4to. 6. Poems in different collections, among others in that of Berni. And the Lives of
Charles V. and Ferdinand the First.
, a voluminous French writer, who was burnt for his religious opinions at Paris, was born
, a voluminous French writer, who was burnt for his religious opinions at Paris, was born at Orleans about 1509, of a good family. Some have reported that he was the natural son of Francis L but this does not agree with the age of that monarch, who was born in 1494. Dolet began his studies at Orleans, and was sent to continue them at Paris when twelve years old. He applied with particular diligence to the belles lettres, and to rhetoric under Nicholas Berauld. His taste for these studies induced him to go to Padua, where he remained for three years, and made great progress under the instructions of Simon de Villa Nova, with whom he contracted an intimate friendship, and not only dedicated some of his poetical pieces to him, but on his death in 1530, composed some pieces to his memory, and wrote his epitaph. After the death of this friend, he intended to have returned to France, but John de Langeac, the Venetian ambassador, engaged him as his secretary. During his residence at Venice, he received some instructions from Baptiste F,griatio, who commented on Lucretius and Cicero’s Offices, and he became enamoured of a young lady whose charms and death he has celebrated in his Latin poems. On his return to France with the ambassador, he pursued his study of Cicero, who became his favourite author; and he began to make collections for his commentaries on the Latin language. His friends having about this time advised him to study law, as a profession, he went to Toulouse, and divided his time between law and the belles lettres. Toulouse was then famous for law studies, and as it was frequented by students of all nations, each had its little society, and its orator or president. The French scholars chose Doiet into this office, and he, with the rashness which adhered to him all his life, commenced hy a harangue in which he praised the French at the expence of the Toulousians, whom he accused of ignorance and barbarism, because the parliament of Toulouse wished to prohibit these societies. This was answered by Peter Pinache, to whom JJolet replied with such aggravated contempt for the Toulousians, that in 1533 he was imprisoned for a month, and then banished from the city. Some think he harboured Lutheran opinions, which was the cause of his imprisonment and banishment, but there is not much in his writings to justify this supposition, except his occasional sneers at ecclesiastics. As soon, however, as he reached Lyons, he took his revenge by publishing his harangues against the Toulousians, with some satirical verses on those whom he considered as the most active promoters of his disgrace; and that he might have something to plead against the consequences of such publications, he pretended that they had been stolen from him and given to the press without his knowledge. The verses were, however, inserted in the collection of his Latin poems printed in 1538.
ions; but Mr. De Piles says he is in doubt whether Domenichino had any genius or not. That ingenious writer seems willing to attribute every degree of excellence in Domenichino’s
, or Domenico Zampieri,a very much admired artist, was born at Bologna in 1581, and received his first instruction in the art of painting, from Denis Calvart; but afterwards he became a disciple of the Caracci, and continued in that school for a long time. The great talents of Domenichino did not unfold themselves as early in him, as talents much inferior to his have disclosed themselves in other painters; he was studious, thoughtful, and circumspect; which by some writers, as well as by his companions, was misunderstood, and miscalled dullness. But the intelligent Annibal Caracci, who observed his faculties with more attention, and knew his abilities better, testified of Domenichino, that his apparent slowness of parts at present, would in time produce what would be an honour to the art of painting. He persevered in the study of his art with incredible application and attention, and daily made rapid advances. Some writers contend that his thoughts were judicious from the beginning, and they were afterwards elevated, wanting but little of reaching the sublime; and that whoever will consider the composition, the design, and the expression, in his Adam and Eve, his Communion of St. Jerom, and in that admirable picture of the Death of St. Agnes at Bologna, will readily perceive that they must have been the result of genius, as well as of just reflections; but Mr. De Piles says he is in doubt whether Domenichino had any genius or not. That ingenious writer seems willing to attribute every degree of excellence in Domenichino’s performances, to labour, or fatigue, or good sense, or any thing but genius; yet, says Pilkington, how any artist could (according to his own estimate in the balance of painters) be on an equality with the Caracci, Nicolo Poussin, and Lionardo da Vinci, in composition and design, and superior to them all by several degrees in expression, and also approach near to the sublime, without having a genius, or even without having an extraordinary good one, seems to me not easily reconcileable. If the productions of an artist must always be the best evidence of his having or wanting a genius, the compositions of Domenichino must ever afford sufficient proofs in his favour. The same biographer says, that as to correctness of design, expression of the passions, and also the simplicity and variety, in the airs of his heads, he is allowed to be little inferior to Raphael; yet his attitudes are but moderate, his draperies rather stiff, and his pencil heavy. However, as he advanced in years and experience, he advanced proportionably in, merit, and the latest of his compositions are his best. There is undoubtedly in the works of this eminent master, what will always claim attention and applause, what will for ever maintain his reputation, and place him among the number of the most excellent in the art of painting. One of the chief excellences of Domenichino consisted in his painting landscapes; and in that style, the beauty arising from the natural and simple elegance of his scenery, his trees, his well- broken grounds, and in particular the character and expression of his figures, gained him as much public admiration as any of his other performances.
There was another DoNi, whose name was John BapTist, a writer on Music, and who left behind him at his death, about 1650,
There was another DoNi, whose name was John BapTist, a writer on Music, and who left behind him at his
death, about 1650, many printed works upon ancient music, as “Compend. del. Trat. de‘ Generi e de’ Modi della
Musica.
” “De praestantia Musicse Veteris,
” and particularly
his “Discorso sopra le Consonanze,
” with a great number
of unfinished essays and tracts relative to that subject, and
the titles of many more. Few men had indeed considered
the subject with greater attention. He saw the difficulties,
though he was unable to solve them. The titles of his
chapters, as well as many of those of father Mersennus,
and others, are often the most interesting and seducing
imaginable. But they are false lights, which like ignes
fatui, lead us into new and greater obscurity. The
treatises which he published both in Latin and Italian,
on the music of the Greeks, being well written in
point of language, obtained him the favour and eulogies
of men of the highest class in literature. He has been
much extolled by Heinsius, Gassendi, Pietro della
Valle, and others. Apostolo Zeno, in his learned notes
to the Biblioteca Italiana of Fontanini, speaks of him
in the following terms: “We had reason to hope that
the works of Doni -would have completed our knowledge
of the musical system of the ancients; as he united
in himself a vast erudition, a profound knowledge in the
Greek language, in mathematics, in the theory of modern
music, in poetry, and history, with access to all the precious Mss. and treasures of antiquity.
” Doni invented an
instrument which he denominated the “Lyra Barberini,
”
or “Amphichordon,
” which he has described in an express
treatise, but we hear of it no where else. He was a declared foe to learned music, particularly vocal in fugue,
where the several performers are uttering different words at
the same time, and certainly manifests good taste, and
enlarged views, with respect to theatrical music and the
improvement of the musical drama or opera; but his objections to modern music, and proposals of reform, not
only manifest his ignorance of the laws of harmony, but a
bad ear, as he recommends such wild, impracticable, and
intolerable expedients of improvement, as no ear well
constructed, however uncultivated, can bear.
, a writer of the fifteenth century, was born at Kiritz, in the marche
, a writer of the fifteenth century, was born at Kiritz, in the marche of Brandenburgh, and was very young when he became a monk of the order of St. Francis. After studying philosophy and theology with distinguished success, he became eminent not only as a preacher, but as a lecturer on the scriptures at Erfurt, and professor of theology at Magdeburgh. He was likewise made minister of his order in the province of Saxe, and held that office in 1431, at which time the Landgrave of Thuringia wrote several letters to him, instructing him to introduce some reform amono 1 the Franciscans of Eisenac. About the same time he was sent as one of the deputies to the council of Basil, by that party of his order who adhered to that council. It was either then, or as some think, ten years later, that he was raised to be general of his order. Whether he had been dismissed, or whether he resigned the office of minister of Saxe, he held it only six years, and went afterwards to pass the rest of his days in the monastery of Kiritz, where he devoted himself to meditation and study, and wrote the greater part of his works. The time of his death is a disputed point. Casimir Oudin gives 1494 as the date of that event, which Marchand, with some probability reduces to 1464.
and was buried there in the cathedral. He had a brother named John, who was an eminent divine and a writer. His own works are very numerous, and evince his theological
, bishop of Derry in Ireland,
the son of William Downham, bishop of Chester, was born
there. He was educated at Cambridge, was elected a fellow of Christ college in 1585, and was afterwards professor
of logic. Fuller says that no man was better skilled in
Aristotle and Ramus, and terms him “the top-twig of that
branch.
” He was esteemed a man of learning, and was
chaplain to James I. by whom he was advanced to the see
of Derry, by letters dated Sept. 6, 1616, and was consecrated Oct. 6, of the same year. During the government
of the lord chancellor Loftus, and the earl of Cork, he obtained a commission, by an immediate warrant from himself to arrest, apprehend, and attach the bodies of all people within his jurisdiction, who should decline the same,
or should refuse to appear upon lawful citation, or appearing should refuse to obey the sentence given against
them, and authority to bind them in recognizances, with
sureties or without, to appear at the council-table to answer
such contempts. The like commission was renewed to
him by the lord deputy Wentworth, Oct. 3, 1633. Both
were obtained upon his information, that his diocese
abounded with all manner of delinquents, who refused obedience to all spiritual processes. He died at Londonderry
April 17, 1634, and was buried there in the cathedral. He
had a brother named John, who was an eminent divine and
a writer. His own works are very numerous, and evince
his theological abilities and piety. 1. “A treatise concerning Antichrist, in two books,
” Lond. The Christian’s Sanctuary,
” ibid. Lectures upon the Fifteenth Psalm,
” ibid. Sermon at the consecration of the Bishop of Bath and
Wells, upon Apocalypse i. 20,
” ibid. 160S, 4to. 5. “Defence of the same Sermon against a nameless author,
” ibid.
Two Sermons, the one commending the
ministry in general, the other, the office of bishops in particular,
” ibid. Papa
Antichristus, sen Diatriba de Antichristo,
” ibid. The Covenant of Grace, or an Exposition upon Luke i.
73, 74, 75,
” Dublin, A treatise on Justification,
” Lond. The Christian’s Freedom, or the doctrine of Christian Liberty,
” Oxford, An Abstract of the Duties commanded, and
sins forbidden in the Law of God,
” Lond. A godly and learned Treatise of Prayer,
” Lond. The Christian Warfare.
” He died in
, a celebrated political writer and physician, was born at Cambridge in 1667; and at the age
, a celebrated political writer and physician, was born at Cambridge in 1667; and at the age of
seventeen admitted a member of that university, where he
soon distinguished himself by his uncommon parts and ingenuity. Some time before the revolution, he took the
degree of B. A. and after that of M. A. bur, going to London in 1693, and discovering an inclinutioji for the study
of physic, he was encouraged in the pursuit of it by sir
Thomas Millington, and the most eminent members of the
college of physicians. In 1696 he took the degree of doctor in that faculty; and was soon after elected F. R. S. and
a fellow of the college of physicians. But whether his own
inclination led him, or whether he did it purely to supply
the defects of a fortune, which was not sufficient to enable
him to keep a proper equipage as a physician in town, he
applied himself to writing for the booksellers. In 1697 he
was concerned in the publication of a pamphlet, entitled
“Commendatory verses upon the author of prince Arthur
and king Arthur.
” In The
History of the last Parliament, begun at Westminster
Feb. 10, in the twelfth year of king William, A. D. 1700.
”
This created him some trouble; for the house of lords,
thinking it reflected too severely on the memory of king
Williau), summoned the author before" them in May 1702,
and ordered him to be prosecuted by the attorney-general;
who brought him to a trial, at which he was acquitted the
year following.
ed the lists once more, under the signature of Modestus, with that extraordinary and still concealed writer, in defence of general Gansel, who had been arrested for debt,
, lieutenant-general and K. B.
was educated at Eton, and at King’s college, Cambridge;
and, preferring the military profession, went to the EastIndies in the company’s service; where, in 1760, he received the privilege of ranking as a colonel in the army,
with Lawrence and Clive, and returned home that year.
In 1761 he was promoted to the rank of brigadier in the
expedition to Belleisle. In 1763, he, with admiral Cornish, conducted the expedition against Manila. They
sailed from Madras Aug. 1, and anchored Sept. 27, in
Manila bay, where the inhabitants had no expectation of
the enemy. The fort surrendered Oct. 6, and was preserved from plunder by a ransom of four millions of dollars;
half to be paid immediately, and the other half in a time
agreed on. The Spanish governor drew on his court for
the first half, but payment was never made. The arguments of the Spanish court were clearly refuted by colonel
Draper in a letter to the earl of Halifax, then premier.
Succeeding administrations declined the prosecution of
this claim from reasons of state which were never divulged;
and the commander in chief lost for his share of the ransom 25,000l. The colours taken at this conquest were
presented to King’s college, Cambridge, and hung up in
their beautiful chapel, and the conqueror was rewarded
with a red ribband. Upon the reduction of the 79th regiment, which had served so gloriously in the East-Indies,
his majesty, unsolicited by him, gave him the 16th regiment of foot as an equivalent. This he resigned to colonel
Gisborne, for his half pay, 1200l. Irish annuity. In 1769
the colonel appeared, and with much credit, in a literacy
character, drawing his pen against that of Junius, in defence of his friend the marquis of Granby, which drew a
retort on himself, answered by him in a second letter to
Junius, on the refutations of the former charge against
him. On a republication of Junius’s first letter, sir William renewed his vindication of himself; and was answered
with great keenness by his famous antagonist. Here the
controversy dropped for the present, but he is supposed to
have entered the lists once more, under the signature of
Modestus, with that extraordinary and still concealed
writer, in defence of general Gansel, who had been arrested for debt, and was rescued by a party of soldiers. In
Oct. 1769 he retired to South Carolina, for the recovery
of his health, and took the opportunity to make the tour
of North America. That year he married miss de Lancy,
daughter of the chief justice of New York, who died in
July 1778, and by whom he had a daughter born Aug. 18,
1773. May 29, 1779, sir William, being then in rank a
lieutenant-general, was appointed lieutenant-governor of
Minorca, on the unfortunate surrender of which important
place he exhibited 29 charges against the late governor,
general Murray, Nov. 11, 1782. Of these 27 were deemed
frivolous and groundless and for the other two the governor was reprimanded. Sir William was then ordered to
make an apology to general Murray, for having instituted
the trial against him; in which he acquiesced. From this
time he appears to have lived in retirement at Bath till his
decease, which happened the 8th of January 1787. Many
particulars respecting his controversy with Junius, as well
as the controversy itself, may be seen in the splendid edition
of “Junius’s Letters,
” published by Mr. Woodfall in
the time of his death, which happened on the last day of May, 1697. He was a voluminous and learned writer; his works, which were much read in his time, and passed through
, the third son of the preceding, was born at Paris in 1633, and after studying
some years at Saumur, he went to Montpellier, where he
completed his medical course, and took his doctor’s degree. He afterwards attended the marshal Turenne in
his campaigns, and was by him appointed physician to the
army. The skill and ability he had shewn in this situation,
occasioned his being nominated to succeed Vander Linden,
in 168S, as professor of medicine at Leyden, whither he
obtained permission to go, though he had been made, several years before, one of the physicians to Lewis the
Fourteenth. Two years after, he was advanced to the chair
of anatomy in the same university. He was also made
physician to William, prince of Orange, and to his princess,
Mary. As rector of the university of Leyden, he spoke
the congratulatory oration to the prince and princess, on
their accession to the throne of England. He continued
to hold his professorships, the offices of which he filled
so as to give universal satisfaction, to the time of his
death, which happened on the last day of May, 1697.
He was a voluminous and learned writer; his works, which
were much read in his time, and passed through several
editions, were collected and published together in 1671,
and again in 1680, in 4 vols. 12mo. But the most complete edition of them is that published at the Hague, in
1727, in 4to. In one of his orations he has been careful
to exculpate professors of medicine from the charge of impiety, so frequently thrown upon them. “Oratio Doctoralis Monspessula, qufi Medicos Dei operum consideratione atque contemplatione permotos, caeteris hominibus
Religioni astrictiores esse demons tratur: atque adeo impietatis crimen in ipsos jactatum diluitur.
” He also, in
his “Apologia Medica,
” refutes the idea of physicians
having been banished from, and not allowed to settle in
Rome for the space of six hundred years. He was a lover
of Greek literature, and like his countryman, Guy Patin,
an enemy to the introduction of chemical preparations into
medicine, which were much used in his time. He was
also a strong opponent to his colleague Sylvius Bayle
has given him a high character. As a man he describes
him benevolent, friendly, pious, and charitable; as a
scholar, versed in the Greek and Latin tongues, and in all
polite literature in as high a degree as if he had never applied himself to any thing else; as a professor of physic,
clear and exact in his method of reading lectures, and of
a skill in anatomy universally admired; as an author, one
whose writings are of an original and inimitable characier.
d Hushal,” against “Absalom and Achitophel.” This last was the production of one Pordage, a dramatic writer. In 1682, Dryden published a poem, called “Religio Laici; or,
The same year, 1681, he published his Medal, a satire
against sedition. This poem was occasioned by the
striking of a medal, on account of the indictment against
the earl of Shaftesbury for high-treason being found ignoramus by the grand jury at the Old Bailey, November
1611, for which the whig-party made great rejoicings by
ringing of bells, bonfires, &c. in all parts of London. The
whole poem is a severe invective against the earl of
Shaftesbury and the whigs to whom the author addresses
himself, ina satirical epistle prefixed to it, thus “I have
one favour to desire of you at parting, that, when you
think of answering this poem, you would employ the same
pens against it, who have combated with so much success
against Absalom and Achitophel; for then you may assure
yourselves of a clear victory without the least reply. Rail
at me abundantly; and, not to break a custom, do it without wit. If God has not blessed you with the talent of
rhyming, make use of my poor stock and welcome: let
your verses run upon my feet; and for the utmost refuge
of notorious blockheads, reduced to the last extremity of
sense, turn my own lines upon me, and, in utter despair
of your own satire, make me satirize myself.
” Settle
wrote an answer to this poem, entitled “The Medal reversed;
” and is erroneously said to have written a poem
called “Azariah and Hushal,
” against “Absalom and
Achitophel.
” This last was the production of one Pordage,
a dramatic writer. In 1682, Dryden published a poem,
called “Religio Laici; or, the Layman’s Faith.
” This
piece is intended as a defence of revealed religion, and of
the excellency and authority of the scriptures, as the only
rule of faith and manners, against deists, papists, and presbyterians. The author tells us in the preface, that it was
written for an ingenious young gentleman, his friend, upon
his translation of father Simon’s “Critical History of the
Old Testament.
” In October of this year, he also published his Mac Flecnoe, an exquisite satire against the poet
Shad well.
uncertain experiment, but patiently submit to death. This account, which was given by a contemporary writer, not long afterwards, is strongly corroborated by the unquestionable
His leg having become mortified, his surgeon recommended an amputation of the limb, with a view to stop the
further progress of the disorder; but he would not undergo
the operation, saying, that as by the course of nature he
had not many years to live, he would not attempt to prolong an uncomfortable existence by a painful and uncertain
experiment, but patiently submit to death. This account,
which was given by a contemporary writer, not long afterwards, is strongly corroborated by the unquestionable testimony of Mrs. Elizabeth Creed, his kinswoman; who informs us, that he received the notice of his approaching
dissolution with perfect resignation and submission to the
Divine Will; and that in his last illness he took the most
tender and affectionate farewell of his afflicted friends, “of
which sorrowful number she herself was one.
” Twentytwo years afterwards this very respectable lady, who was
then in her eightieth year, erected a monument at Tichmarsh, in honour of our poet and his parents, on which
these circumstances so much to his honour are recorded.
(See Creed, vol. X.)
culiar to him; which is, that his parts did not decline with his years, but that he was an improving writer to the last, even to near se* venty years of age; improving
His translations of Virgil, Juvenal, and Persius, and his
Fables, were more successful, as we have observed already.
But his poetical reputation is built chiefly upon his original poems, among which his Ode on Saint Caecilia’s
Day is justly esteemed one of the most perfect pieces in
any language. It has been set to music more than once,
particularly in the winter of 1735, by Handel; and was
publicly performed with the utmost applause, on the theatre
in Covent-garden. Congreve, in the dedication of our
author’s dramatic works to the duke of Newcastle, has
drawn his character to great advantage. He represented
him, in regard to his moral character, in every respect not
only blameless, but amiable; and, “as to his writings,
”
says he, “no man hath written in our language so much
and so various matter, and in so various manners, so well.
Another thing I may say was very peculiar to him; which
is, that his parts did not decline with his years, but that
he was an improving writer to the last, even to near se*
venty years of age; improving even in fire and imagination, as well as in judgment; witness his Ode on St. Caecilia’s Day, and his Fables, his latest performances. He
was equally excellent in verse and in prose. His prose
had all the clearness imaginable, together with all the
nobleness of expression; all the graces and ornaments
proper and peculiar to it, without deviating into the language or diction of poetry. I have heard him frequently
own with pleasure, that if he had any talent for English
prose, it was owing to his having often read the writings
of the great archbishop Tillotson. His versification and
his numbers he could learn of nobody; for he first possessed those talents in perfection in our tongue. In his
poems, his diction is, wherever his subject requires it, so
sublimely and so truly poetical, that its essence, like that
of pure gold, cannot be destroyed. What he has done in
any one species or distinct kind of writing, would have
been sufficient to have acquired him a great name. If he
had written nothing but his prefaces, or nothing but his
songs or his prologues, each of them would have entitled
him to the preference and distinction of excelling in his
kind.
” It may be proper to observe, that Congreve, in
drawing this character of Dryden, discharged an obligation laid on him by our poet, in these lines:
s thoughts, and mixed with the conduct of his writings, as well as his life.” Voltaire styles him “a writer whose genius was too exuberant, and not accompanied with judgment
Pope had a high opinion of Dryden. His verses upon
his Ode on St. Caecilia’s Day are too well known to need
transcribing. In a letter to Wycherley, he says, “It was
certainly a great satisfaction to me, to see and converse
with a man, whom in his writings I had so long known
with pleasure; but it was a very high addition to it, to hear
you at our very first meeting doing justice to your dead
friend Mr. Dryden. I was not so happy as to know him:
Frrgtlium tantum vidi. Had I been born early enough,
I must have known and loved him; for I have been assured, not only by yourself, but by Mr. Congreve and
sir William Trumball, that his personal qualities were as
amiable as his poetical, notwithstanding the many libellous misrepresentations of them; against which, the former of these gentlemen has told me he will one day vindicate him.
” But what Congreve and Pope have said of
Dryden, is rather in the way of panegyric, than an exact
character of him. Others have spoken of him more moderately, and yet have probably done him no injustice.
Thus Felton observes, th^.t “he at once gave the best
rules, and broke them in spite of his own knowledge, and
the Rehearsal. His prefaces are many of them admirable
upon dramatic writings: he had some peculiar notions, which
he maintains with great address; but his judgment in disputed points is of less weight and value, because the inconstancy of his temper did run into his thoughts, and mixed
with the conduct of his writings, as well as his life.
” Voltaire
styles him “a writer whose genius was too exuberant, and
not accompanied with judgment enough; and tells us, that
if he had writ only a tenth part of the works he left behind him, his character would have been conspicuous in
every part; but his groat fault is, his having endeavoured
to be universal.
” Dryden has made no scruple to disparage himself, where he thought he had not excelled.
Thus, in his dedication of his Aurengzebe to the earl of
Mulgrave, speaking of his writing for the stage, “I never
thought myself,
” says he, “very fit for an employment
where many of my predecessors have excelled me in all
kinds; and some of my contemporaries, even in my own
partial judgment, have outdone me in comedy. Some
little hopes I have yet remaining (and those too, considering my abilities, may be vain), that I may make the world
some part of amends for many ill plays, by an heroic
poem,
” of which, however, he did not execute any part.
Upon the whole, Mr. Malone appears to have examined
and delineated his character as a man, with most truth and
precision; and as a poet it is impossible to refer to any
thing equal to that masterly criticism given by Dr. Johnson
in his life of our poet.
, an eminent French writer and critic, secretary, and one of the forty members of the French
, an eminent French writer and critic, secretary, and one of the forty members of the French academy, censor-royal, &c. was born at Beauvais, in December, 1670. After some elementary education at home, he came to Paris in 1686, and pursuing his studies, took his bachelor’s degree in divinity in 1691. One of his uncles, a canon of the cathedral of Beauvais, being attacked by a dangerous illness, resigned his canonry to him in 1695, but on his recovery chose to revoke his resignation. The nephew appears to have felt this and other disappointments in his view of promotion so keenly, as to determine to change his profession. He accordingly left Beauvais in the last-mentioned year, returned to Paris, and soon was distinguished as a man of abilities. The same year he acquired a situation in the office for foreign affairs, and became patronized by M. de Torcy, by whose means he accompanied the French plenipotentiaries to Ryswick, in 1696, where peace was concluded. After his return to France, he was sent to Italy in 1699, although without an ostensible character, to negociate some affairs of importance in the Italian courts, which occupied him until 1702. Some time after, he went to England, as charge d'affaires, and while the war occasioned by the contest about the crown of Spain was at its height, and had involved all Europe, he was the only minister France had at the court of St. James’s, where he resided without rank or character. He then went to the Hague, and to Brussels, and at this latter place wrote the manifesto of the elector of Bavaria, which did him so much credit. In 1707 we find him at Neufchatel, and in 1710 at Gertruydenburgh, and he appears to have had a considerable hand in the treaties of peace concluded at Utrecht, Baden, and Rastadt. All these services were recompensed in 1705, by the priory of Veneroles, and in 1714 by a canonry of the church of Beauvais. Having been employed in other state affairs by the regent and by cardinal Dubois, he was rewarded in 1716 by a pension of 2000 livres, and in 1723 was promoted to the abbey of Notre-Dame de Ressons, near Beauvais. As it was now his intention to execute the duties of these preferments, he received in 1724 the orders of subdeacon and deacon, and was about to have taken possession of his canonry, when he was seized with a disorder at Paris, which proved fatal March 23, 1742. In 1720 he was elected into the French academy, and in 1723 was appointed their secretary.
n, heard, and reflected upon the fine arts, and he must be allowed to be upon some topics an elegant writer, and an ingenious reasoner; but, with regard to the subject
His works, which procured him a very high reputation
in France, were published inxhe following order: 1. “Histoire des quatre Gordiens, prouvee et illustree par les
medailles,
” Paris, Animadversiones ad Nicolai Bergerii librog
de publicis et militaribus imperii Romani viis,
” Utrecht
and Leyden, Les interets de PAngleterre, mal
entendiis dans la guerre presente,
” Amst. Histoire de la ligue de Cambrai, faite Tan
1508, centre la republique de Venise,
” Paris, Reflections critiques
sur la Poesie et la Peinture,
” Paris, Dubos’s reputation now
principally rests, contains many useful remarks, in a style
peculiarly agreeable, but his taste has been frequently attacked, and his enthusiasm for the arts doubted. Voltaire
gave him the praise of having seen, heard, and reflected
upon the fine arts, and he must be allowed to be upon
some topics an elegant writer, and an ingenious reasoner;
but, with regard to the subject of music, both his prejudices and his ignorance are visible. He not only determines, says Dr. Burney, that the French and Fleming*
cultivated music before the Italians; but, wholly unacquainted with the compositions of other parts of Europe,
asserted that there was no music equal to that of Lulli, only
known and admired in France. And where, adds the doctor, will he be believed, except in that kingdom, when he
says that foreigners allow his countrymen to understand
time and measure better than the Italians? He never loses
an opportunity of availing himself of the favourable opinions of foreigners in behalf of French music, against that
of other parts of Europe. Not only Guicciardini, but Addison, Gravina, and Vossius, all equally unacquainted with
the theory, practice, or history of the art, and alike deprived of candour by the support of some favourite opinion or hypothesis, are pressed into the service of his
country. If when D'Alembert wrote his Eulogy, he could
say that Dubos was one of those men of letters who had
more merit than fame, the converse of the proposition is
now nearer the truth, and yet the merit of having produced
a very agreeable book may be allowed him; and a book, a
great deal of which will contribute to form a just taste on
those subjects with which he is really acquainted. 6.
” Histoire critique de l'etablissment de la monarchic Franoise dans les Gaules," Paris, 1734, 3 vols. 4to. Profiting
by some criticisms on this work from the pen of M. Hoffman, professor of history at Wittemberg, he left for publication a corrected edition, which appeared in 1743, 2
vols. 4to. Besides these, he published a translation in
French prose, of part of Addison’s Cato, and some discourses held in the French academy.
gh the style is sometimes obscure, and there is here and there an affectation of novelty, in which a writer of consummate taste would not have indulged; but these defects
, born at Dinant in Bretagne, about the close of 1705, the son of a hatter, received a distinguished education at Paris. His taste for
literature obtained him admission to the most celebrated
academies of the metropolis, of the provinces, and of foreign countries. Being chosen to succeed Mirabaud, as
perpetual secretary of the French academy, he filled that
post as a man who was fond of literature, and had the
talent of procuring it respect. Though domesticated at
Paris, he was appointed in 1744 mayor of Dinant; and in
1755 had a patent of nobility granted him by the king, in
reward for the zeal which the states of Bretagne had shewn
for the service of the country. That province having received orders to point out such subjects as were most deserving of the favours of the monarch, Duclos was unanimously named by the tiers-6tat. He died at Paris, March
26, 1772, with the title of historiographer of France. His
conversation was at once agreeable, instructive and lively.
He reflected deeply, and expressed his thoughts with,
energy, and illustrated them by well selected anecdotes.
Lively and impetuous by nature, he was frequently the
severe censor of pretensions that had no foundation. But
age, experience, intercourse with society, a great fund of
good sense, at length taught him to restrict to mankind
in general those hard truths which never fail to displease
individuals. His austere probity, from whence proceeded
that bluntness for which he was blamed in company, his
beneficence, and his other virtues, gave him a right to the
public esteem. “Few persons,
” says M. le prince de
Beauvau, “better knew the duties and the value of friendship. He would boldly serve his friends and neglected
merit on such occasions he displayed an art which excited
no distrust, and which would not have been expected in a
man who his whole life long chose rather to shew the truth
with force, than to insinuate it with address.
” At first he
was of the party which went under the name of the philosophers; but the excesses of its leader, and of some of his
subalterns, rendered him somewhat more circumspect.
Both in his conversation and in his writings he censured
those presumptuous writers, who, under pretence of attacking superstition, undermine the foundations of morality,
and weaken the bands of society. Once, speaking on this
subjert, “these enthusiastic philosophers,
” said he, “will
proceed such lengths, as at last to make me devout.
” Besides, he was too fond of his own peace and happiness to
follow them in their extravagancies, and placed no great
value on their friendship or good will. “Duclos est a la
fois droit et adroit,
” said one of his philosophical friends,
and it was in consequence of this prudence, that he never
would publish any tiling of what he wrote as historiographer
of France. “Whenever I have been importuned,
” said
he, “to bring out some of my writings on the present
reign, I have uniformly answered, that I was resolved
neither to ruin myself by speaking truth, nor debase myself by flattery. However, I do not the less discharge my
duty. If I cannot speak to my contemporaries, I will shew
the rising generation what their fathers were.
” Indeed,
we are told that he did compose the history of the reign of
Lewis XV. and that after his death it was lodged in the
hands of the minister. The preface to this work may be
seen in the first vol. of the “Pieces inte>essantes
” of M. de
la Place. Duclos’s works consist of some romances, which
have been much admired in. France; 1. “The Confessions
of count ***.
” 2. “The baroness de Luz.
” 3. “Memoirs
concerning the Manners of the eighteenth Century;
”
each in 1 vol. 12mo. 4. <l Acajou;“in 4to and 12mo, with
plates. In the Confessions he has given animation and
action to what appeared rather dry and desultory in his
” Considerations on the Manners.“Excepting two or
three imaginary characters, more fantastical than real, the
remainder seems to be the work of a master. The situations, indeed, are not so well unfolded as they might have
been; the author has neglected the gradations, the shades;
and the romance is not sufficiently dramatical. But the
interesting story of madame de Selve proves that M. Duclos
knew how to finish as well as to sketch. His other romances are inferior to the
” Confessions.“The memoirs
relating to the manners of the eighteenth century abound
in just observations on a variety of subjects. Acajou is no
more than a tale, rather of the grotesque species, but well
written. 5.
” The History of Lewis XI.“1745, 3 vols.
12mo; and the authorities, an additional volume, 1746,
contain curious matter. The style is concise and elegant,
but too abrupt and too epigrammatical. Taking Tacitus
for his model, whom, by the way, he approaches at a veryhumble distance, he has been less solicitous about the
exact and circumstantial particularization of facts, than
their aggregate compass, and their influence on the manners, laws, customs, and revolutions of the state. Though
his diction has been criticised, it must be confessed that
his lively and accurate narration, perhaps at the same time
rather dry, is yet more supportable than that ridiculous
pomp of words which almost all the French authors have
employed in a department where declamation and exaggeration are the greatest defects. 6.
” Considerations on
the Manners of the present Century,“12mo; a book
replete with just maxims, accurate definitions, ingenious
discussions, novel thoughts, and well-drawn characters,
although the style is sometimes obscure, and there is here
and there an affectation of novelty, in which a writer of
consummate taste would not have indulged; but these defects are amply compensated by a zeal for truth, honour,
probity, beneficence, and all the moral and social virtues.
Lewis XV. said of this book,
” It is the work of a worthy
man.“7.
” Remarks on the general Grammar of PortRoyal.“In these he shews himself a philosophical grammarian. 7.
” Voyage en Italie,“1791, 8vo. This trip he
took in 1767 and 1768. 8.
” Memoirs secrets sur les
regnes de Louis XIV et Louis XV. 1791," 2 vols. 8vo, in
which are many curious anecdotes and bold facts. He
wrote also several dissertations in the Memoirs of the academy of belles-lettres, which contain much eruuiti Hi,
qualified by the charms of wit, and ornamented by a diction clear, easy, correct, and always adapted to the subject. Duclos had a greater share than any other in the
edition of 1762 of the Dictionary of the French Academy;
in which his usual accuracy and judgment are everywhere
apparent and he had begun a continuation of the history
of that society. His whole works were collected for the
first time, and printed at Paris in 1806, 10 vols. 8vo, with
a life by M. Auger, and many pieces left by him in manuscript. This edition appears to have revived his fame in
France, and made him be enrolled among her standard
authors.
s, particularly of the modern school^ who seem proud of their convert; but the fact is denied by the writer of his life, who, on the contrary, asserts, he disputed strongly
, an eminent prelate, was born Feb.
6, 1533, at Buda, and educated by his uncle, who was
bishop of Vaccia, or Veitzen, and out of respect to him
he took the name of Shardellet. In 1560 the emperor
Ferdinand II. admitted Dudith into his council, and appointed him bishop of Tina. He was sent soon after to the
council of Trent, in the name of the emperor, and all the
Hungarian clergy; and there made a very eloquent speech,
April 9, 1568, which was heard with great pleasure. But
this was not the case with another speech which he delivered in that place on July 6; for, though he shewed
great zeal for the pope, and exclaimed strongly against
Luther, yet he expressed himself so freely, both there and
in his common conversation, on the necessity of episcopal
residence, and in favour of marriage among the clergy,
and administering the cup in the sacrament, that the legates, apprehensive of his drawing many prelates to his
opinion, wrote to the pope, informing him, that Dudith
was a dangerous man, and that it was necessary he should
leave Trent. Upon tnis the pope solicited the emperor to
recall him, which he accordingly did: but Ferdinand, far
from blaming his conduct, rewarded it with the bishopric
of Chonat, and soon after gave him that of five churches.
This prince dying 1564, Dudith was sent by Maximilian
II. into Poland, whither he nad been sent before by
Ferdinand, and privately married lleyna Strazzi, maid of honour to the queen, resigning his bishopric. Rome cited
him, excommunicated him, and even condemned him to
the flames as an heretic, yet he despised her threats, and
remained in security. After the death of his first wife, by
whomhehadthreechildren, he married in 1579, a lady
descended from an illustrious Polish family, widow of count
John Zarnow, and sister of the famous Sborowits, by whom
also he had children. Dudith, at length, openly professed
the reformed religion, and even became a Socinian, according to most authors, particularly of the modern school^
who seem proud of their convert; but the fact is denied
by the writer of his life, who, on the contrary, asserts, he
disputed strongly against Socinus. He then settled at
Breslaw in Silesia, where he died February 23, 1589, aged
56. Dudith, according to the representations both of his
friends and enemies, was a handsome well-made man, of
a peaceable disposition; civil, affable, regular in his conduct, very charitable to the poor, and benevolent towards
all mankind. He had a taste for the classics, and so great
a veneration for Cicero, that he wrote all that orator’s
works, three times over, with his own hand. He likewise
understood several languages, and was well acquainted
with history, philosophy, mathematics, physic, law, and
divinity. He left a great number of works: the principal
are, “Dissertationes de Cometis,
” Utrecht,
in 1695, by James Wright, author of the “History of Rutlandshire.” Another epitome, by an anonymous writer, was published in 1718. Great additions were made to the Monasticon
The general preface to the “Monasticon
” was drawn
up by the learned sir John Marsham, and is followed by a
short view of the first institution of the monastic life.
Great part of the impression of the third volume was accidentally burnt, and that is now of course the scarcest.
The variations in the price of these volumes have been
singular. Whiston informs us that in 1728, they sold for
18l., and in 1764 for only seven but of late they have
risen to 50l. The first volume was reprinted with large
additions, in 1682; and the whole was abridged in 1695,
by James Wright, author of the “History of Rutlandshire.
”
Another epitome, by an anonymous writer, was published
in 1718. Great additions were made to the Monasticon
itself in “The History of the ancient Abbeys, Monasteries,
Hospitals, Cathedral and Collegiate Churches,
” by John Stephens, gent. This work, which contains in folio, two additional volumes to sir William Dugdale’s Monasticon, appeared in 1722 and 1723. Mr. Peck promised a fourth volume
of the Monasticon, and in 1735, told the world that it was in
great forwardness. He left behind him on this subject, some
curious manuscript volumes, in 4to, now in the British Museum, some particulars concerning which may be seen in the
Anecdotes of Mr. Bowyer, vol. I. p. 518, and a full enumeration of their contents in Ayscough’s Catalogue, vol. I.
p. 55 67. We have, however, at length the prospect of
a much improved edition, which has been undertaken by
the rev. Bulkeley Bandinell, F. S. A. principal librarian of
the Bodleian; and which, if we may judge from the part
delivered in July (1813) to the subscubers, may be justly
praised for the accuracy, splendour, and spirit of the
learned editor and proprietors.
In the mean time he printed at his own charge, and
published in 1656, “The Antiquities of Warwickshire iilustr ted; from records, leiger-books, manuscripts, charters, evidences, tombs, and arms; beautified with maps,
prospects, and portraitures,
” folio. The author tells us
in his preface, that he spent the greatest part of his lime,
for more than twenty years, in accomplishing this work
which indeed is reckoned his master- piece, and is allowed
to be one of the best methodized and most accurate accounts that ever was written of this nature. A second
edition was published in 1730, “in two volumes, printed
from a copy corrected by the author himself, and with the
original copper-plates. The whole revised, augmented,
and continued down to this present time, by William
Thomas, D. D. some time rector of Exhall, in the same
county.
” While this work was printing, which was for
near a year and a half, Dugdale continued in London, for
the sake of correcting the press; during which time he
had an opportunity of collecting materials for another
work, which he published in 1658. “The History of St.
Paul’s Cathedral, in London,
” folio. A second edition of
this curious work, corrected and enlarged by the author’s
own hand, was published in 1716, in folio, by Edward
Maynard, D. D. rector of Boddington, in Northamptonshire; to which is prefixed his life written by himself, from
which these memorials of him are chiefly extracted. Five
of the original plates being lost, five new ones were engraved for this second edition; to which are great additions
in several places, and particularly a new introduction.
Besides these there is an account of the new building of
St. P.nil’s to 1685; with a catalogue of the several benefactors, and the sums they gave towards it; and, “An
historical Account of the Cathedral and. collegiate Churches
of York, Hippon, Southwell, Beverly, Durham, and Carlisle;
” of which, however, the first four appear to have
been by sir Thomas Herbert, and the two last are probably not by Dugdale.
s a poet that had already made many songs: and that poem is the composition rather of an experienced writer, than of a novice in the art. It is indeed probable that his
, an eminent Scotch poet, was
born about the year 1465, and, as it is generally supposed,
although without much foundation, at Salton, a village on
the delightful coast of the Forth in East Lothian. This is
collected from what Kennedy, a contemporary poet, says
in one of his satires; who mentions likewise his own wealth,
and Dunbar’s poverty. If we are to credit the same author,
Dunbar was related to the earls of March; but of this there
is no satisfactory evidence. In his youth he seems to have
been a travelling noviciate of the Franciscan order; but
this mode of life not being agreeable to his inclination, he
resigned it, and returned to Scotland, as is supposed, about
1490, when he might be 25 years of age. In his “Thistle
and Rose,
” which was certainly written in The twa marrit wemen and the wedo;
”
and, “The freirs of Bervvik,
” (if the last be his) were
written before his “Thistle and Rose.
” However tin’s
may have been, Dunbar, after being the author of “The
gold in Terge,
” a poem rich in description, and of many
small pieces of the highest merit, died in old age about
1530. In his younger years, our poet seems to have had
great expectations that his abilities would have recommended him to an ecclesiastical benetice; and in his
smaller poems he frequently addresses the king lor that
purpose: but there is no reason to believe that he was successful, although it may be thought that the “Thistle and
Rose,
” which was occasioned by the marriage of James IV.
king of Scotland, with Margaret Tudor, eldest daughter
of Henry VII. king of England, deserved better treatment at the hands of the young royal pair. Mr. Pinkerton,
in his list of Scottish poets, tells us, he has looked in vain
over many calendars of the characters, &c. of this period,
to find Dunbar’s name; but suspects that it was never
written by a lawyer. Mr. Warton, in characterising the
Scottish poets of this time, observes that the writers of that
nation have adorned the period with a degree of sentiment
and spirit, a command of phraseology, and a fertility of
imagination, not to be found in any English poet since
Chaucer and Lydgate. “He might safely have added,
”
says Mr. Pinkerton, “not even in Chaucer or Lydgate.
”
Concerning Dunbar, Mr. Warton says, that the natural
complexion of his genius is of the moral and didactic cast.
This remark, however, Mr. Pinkerton thinks, must not be
taken too strictly. “The goldin Terge,
” he adds, “is
moral; and so are many of his small pieces: but humour,
description, allegory, great poetical genius, and a vast
wealth of words, all unite to form the complexion of Dunbar’s poetry. He unites, in himself, and generally surpasses the qualities of the chief old English poets; the
morals and satire of Langland; Chaucer’s humour, poetry,
and knowledge of life; the allegory of Gower; the description of Lydgate.
” This is a very high character, but
surely the morality of his poems may be questioned. Several of his compositions contain expressions which appear
to us grossly profane and indecent; and one of his addresses
to the queen would not now be addressed to a modern courtezan. Even the most sacred observances of the church
are converted into topics of ridicule; and its litanies are
burlesqued in a parody, the profaneness of which is almost
unparalleled. The notes added to the collection published
by sir David Daly rm pie in 1770 are peculiarly valuable;
for they not only explain and illustrate the particular
expressions and phrases of the pieces in question, but contain
several curious anecdotes, and throw considerable light on
the manners of the times.
, professor of philosophy in the marischal college, Aberdeen, and a learned writer, was born in that city in the month of July 1717. His father,
, professor of philosophy in the marischal college, Aberdeen, and a learned writer, was born in that city in the month of July 1717. His father, William Duncan, was a respectable tradesman in the same place, and his mother, Euphemia Kirkwood, was the daughter of a wealthy farmer in East Lothian, the first district in Scotland where agriculture was much improved. Young Duncan received his grammatical education partly in the public grammar-school of Aberdeen, and partly at Foveran, about fifteen miles distant, where there was a boardingschool, which at that time was greatly frequented, on account of the reputation of Mr. George Forbes, the master. In November 1733, Mr. Duncan entered the marischal college of Aberdeen, and applied himself particularly to the study of the Greek language, under the celebrated professor Dr. Thomas Blackwell. After going through the ordinary course of philosophy and mathematics, which continues for three years, he took the degree of M. A. This was in April 1737, and he never took any other degree. Mr. Duncan appears to have been designed for the ministry, and in this view he attended the theological lectures of the professors at Aberdeen for two winters. Not, however, finding in himself any inclination to the clerical profession, he quitted his native place, and removed to London in 1739, where he became an author by profession. In this capacity various works were published by him without his name; the exact nature and number of which it is not in our power to ascertain. It is in general understood that he translated several books from the French, and that he engaged in different undertakings which were proposed to him by the booksellers. There is reason to believe that he had a very considerable share in the translation of Horace which goes under the name of Watson. Without, however, anxiously inquiring after every translation, and every compilation in which Mr. Duncan might be concerned, we shall content ourselves with taking notice of the three principal productions upon which his literary reputation is founded. The first, in point of time, was his translation of several select orations of Cicero. It has gone through several impressions, and was much used as a schoolbook, the Latin being printed on one side, and the English on the other. A new edition in this form appeared in 1792. Sir Charles Whitworth, in 1777, published Mr. Duncan’s version in English only, for the benefit of such young persons of both sexes, as have not had the benefit of a liberal education. The publication is in 2 vols. 8vo. In his preface, sir Charles speaks highly, and we believe justly, of Mr. Duncan’s merit as a translator, and ranks him with a Leland, a Hampton, and a Melmoth. Mr. Duncan accompanied his translation with short but judicious explanatory notes.
, an ingenious poetical and miscellaneous writer, youngest son of John Buncombe, esq. of Stocks, in the parish
, an ingenious poetical and
miscellaneous writer, youngest son of John Buncombe,
esq. of Stocks, in the parish of Ahibury, Hertfordshire,
and Hannah his wife, was born at his father’s house in
Hatton-garden, London, Jan. 9, 1689-90, and owed his
Christian name to the revolution principles of his father
and family. On the same principles, his father in 1693
put his life into the tontine, or annuities increasing by survivorship, subscribing 100l. on it, for which \Ql. per annum was paid immediately, and from which, in the course
of his long life, our author received some thousands. He
was educated in two private seminaries, viz. at Cheney, in
Bucks, and afterwards at Pinner, near Harrow-on-the- Hill,
Middlesex, under the tuition of Mr. Thomas Goodwin.
In December 1706, Mr. Buncombe was entered as a clerk
in the navy-office, and was advanced to a higher salary in
January 1707-8. So early as 1715, we find a translation by
him of the twenty-ninth ode of the first book of Horace,
in the collection commonly known by the name of “The
Wit’s Horace.
” About this time, being acquainted with
Mr. Jabefc Hughes, Mr. Buncombe was introduced to his
brother John, author of the “Siege of Damascus,
” and
also to his sister (afterwards Mrs. Buncombe), who was a
woman of excellent sense and temper. Our author’s
translation of the Carmen Seculare of Horace was printed
in folio in 1721, and was collected in 1731, in Concanen’s
Miscellany, entitled “The Flower-piece.
” This was followed in Athaliah
”
by Racine, which was published by subscription, and has
gone through three editions. Having contracted an intimacy
at the Navy-office with Mr. Henry Needier, a gentleman
endued with a like taste, our author, by supplying him
with proper books, enabled him to gratify his ardent thirst
for knowledge; and, on his early death in 1718, hastened
by his intense application, discharged the debt of friendship by collecting and publishing his “Original Poems,
Translations, Essays, and Letters,
” in Whitehall Evening Post,
” several
of his fugitive pieces appeared occasionally in that paper;
in particular, a translation of Buchanan’s “Verses on
Valentine’s Day;
” “Verses to Euryalus (Mr. John Carleton) on his coming of age;
” “The Choice of Hercules,
”
fr.,;u Xenophon, (for which there was such a demand, that the paper was in a few days ont of print); and a “Defence
of some passages in Paradise Lost,
” from the hyper-criticism of M. de Voltaire. About the same time, numberless errors in a new edition of Chillingworth were pointed
out by him, and translations of the “Letters between
Archbishop Fenelon and M. de la Motte,
” since republished in the appendix to archbishop Herring’s Letters,
and of the “Adventures of Melesickton,
” and other fables
from Fenelon, were published in the London Journal. In
the lottery of 1725, a ticket which Mr. Duncombe had in
partnership with miss Elizabeth Hughes, sister of John
Hughes, esq. author of “The Siege of Damascus,
” was
drawn a pnze of
, a writer of the ninth century, better known by his works than his personal
, a writer of the ninth century, better known
by his works than his personal history, is supposed to have
been a native of Ireland, who emigrated to France, and
there probably died. Cave and Dupin call him deacon,
but Dungal himself assumes no other title than that of subject to the French kings, and their orator. In his youth
he studied sacred and profane literature with success, and
taught the former, and had many scholars, but at last determined to retire from the world. The influence which
Valclon or Valton, the abbot of St. Denis near Paris, had
over him, with some other circumstances, afford reason to
think that if he was not a monk of that abbey, he had retired somewhere in its neighbourhood, or perhaps resided
in the house itself. During this seclusion he did not forsake his studies, but cultivated the knowledge of philosophy, and particularly of astronomy, which was much the
taste of that age. The fame he acquired as an astronomer
induced Charlemagne to consult him in the year 811, on
the subject of two eclipses of the sun, which took place
the year before, and Dungal answered his queries in a long
letter which is printed in D'Acheri’s Spicilegium, vol. III.
of the folio, and vol. X. of the 4to edition, with the opinion
of Ismael Bouillaud upon it. Sixteen years after, in the
year 827, Dungal took up his pen in defence of images
against Claude, bishop of Turin, and composed a treatise
which had merit enough to be printed, first separately, in
1608, 8vo, and was afterwards inserted in the “Bibliotheca Patrum.
” It would appear also that he wrote some
poetical pieces, one of which is in a collection published in
1729 by Martene and Durand. The time of his death is
unknown, but it is supposed he was living in the year 834.
mains but two or three fragments in Franchinus, and Morley. He is very unjustly accused by this last writer of separating the syllables of the same words by rests. Stow
, “an English musician of the fifteenth century, at an early stage of counterpoint, acquired
on the continent the reputation of being its inventor,
which, however, Dr. Burney has proved could not belong
to him. He was the musician whom the Germans, from a
similarity of name, have mistaken for saint Dunstan, and
to whom, as erroneously, they have ascribed with others
the invention of counterpoint in four parts. He was author
of the musical treatise
” De Mensurabili Musica,“which
is cited by Franchinus, Morley, and Ravenscroft. But
though this work is lost, there is still extant in the Bodleian
library, a Geographical Tract by this author and, if we
may believe his epitaph, which is preserved by Weever, he
was not only a musician, but a mathematician, and an eminent astrologer. Of his musical compositions nothing remains but two or three fragments in Franchinus, and Morley.
He is very unjustly accused by this last writer of separating
the syllables of the same words by rests. Stow calls him
” a
master of astronomy and music," and says he w;;s buried
in the church of St. Stephen, Walbrook, in 1458.
, bookseller and miscellaneous writer, was born at Graff bam, in Huntingdonshire, the 14th of May,
, bookseller and miscellaneous writer,
was born at Graff bam, in Huntingdonshire, the 14th of May,
1659; the son of John Dunton, fellow of Trinity-college,
Cambridge, and rector of Graft ham, whose works he published in 8vo, embellished with very curious engravings.
Dunton was in business upwards of twenty years, during
which time he traded considerably in the Stationers’ company; but, about the beginning of the last century, he
failed, and commenced author; and in 1701, was amanuensis to the editor of a periodical paper called the “Post
Angel.
” He soon after set up as a writer for the entertainment of the public; and projected and carried on, with
the assistance of others, the “Athenian Mercury,
” or a
scheme to answer a series of questions monthly, the querist
remaining concealed. This work was continued to about
20 volumes; and afterwards reprinted by Bell, under the
title of the “Athenian Oracle,
” 4 vols. 8vo. It forms a
strange jumble of knowledge and ignorance, sense and
nonsense, curiosity and impertinence. In 1710 he published his “Athenianism,
” or the projects of Mr. John
Dunton, author of the “Essay on the hazard of a deathbed repentance.
” This contains, amidst a prodigious variety of matter, six hundred treatises in prose and verse,
by which he appears to have been, with equal facility, a
philosopher, physician, poet, civilian, divine, humourist,
&c. To this work he has prefixed his portrait, engraved
by M. Vander Gucht; and in a preface, which breathes all
the pride of self-consequence, informs his readers he does
not write to flatter, or for hire. As a specimen of this
miscellaneous farrago, the reader may take the following
heads of subjects: 1. The Funeral of Mankind, a paradox,
proving we are all dead and buried. 2. The spiritual
hedge-hog; or, a new and surprising thought. 3. The
double life, or a new way to redeem time, by living over
to-morrow before it comes. 4. Dunton preaching to himself; or every man his own parson. 5. His creed, or the
religion of a bookseller, in imitation of Brown’s Religio
Medici, which h.is some humour and merit. This he dedicated to the Stationers’ company. As a satirist, he
appears to most advantage in his poems entitled the “Beggar
mounted
” the “Dissenting Doctors;
” “Parnassus hoa!
”
or frolics in verse “Dunton’s shadow,
” or the character
of a summer friend but in all his writings he is exceedingly prolix and tedious, and sometimes obscure. His
“Case is altered, or Dunton’s remarriage to his own wife,
”
has some singular notions, but very little merit in the composition. For further particulars of this heterogeneous genius,
see “Dunton’s Life and Errors,
” a work now grown somewhat scarce, or, what will perhaps be more satisfactory, the
account of him in our authority. Dunton died in 1733.
, a political writer of much note in France and England, and a citizen of Geneva,
, a political writer of much
note in France and England, and a citizen of Geneva, was
born in 1749, of an ancient family in Switzerland, who
had been distinguished as magistrates and scholars. At
the age of twenty-two he was appointed, through the interest of Voltaire, professor of belles-lettres at Cassel,
and about that time he published two or three historical
tracts. He was afterwards concerned with Linguet in the
publication of the “Annales Politiques,
” at Lausanne.
In Mercure Britannique,
” which came
out once a fortnight, nearly to the time of his death. This
event took place at the house of his friend count Lally Tollendal, at Richmond, May 10, 1800. His “Mercure,
”
and other works, although of a temporary nature, contain
facts, and profound views of the leading events of his time,
which will be of great importance to future historians, and
during publication contributed much to enlighten the
public mind.
im unusual authority in the country where he lived; but his incessant labours both as a preacher and writer brought on a consumptive disorder, of which he died June 25,
, an eminent Scotch divine of the
seventeenth century, the eldest son of John Durham of
Easter-Powrie, esq. and descended from the ancient family
of Grange Durham in the county of Angus, was born
about 1622, and educated at the university of St. Andrew’s, which he left without taking a degree, as he had
then no design of following any of the learned professions.
When the civil wars broke out, he served in the army, with
the rank of captain, but was so much affected by his narrow escape from being killed in an engagement with the
English, that, encouraged by Dr. David Dickson, professor of divinity at Glasgow, he determined to devote himself to the church. With this view he went to Glasgow,
studied divinity under Dr. Dickson, and in 1646 was licensed by the presbytery of Irvine to preach. In the following year he was ordained minister of the Black-friars 7
church in Glasgow, where he became one of the most
popular preachers of his time. In 1650 he was chosen to
succeed Dr. Dickson as professor, and about the same time
attended Charles II. when in Scotland, as one of his chaplains. In 1651, when Cromwell and his army were at
Glasgow, Durham preached before the usurper, and upbraided him to his face for having invaded the country.
Next day Cromwell sent for him, and told him he thought
he had been a wiser man than to meddle with public affairs
in his sermons. Durham answered that it was not his common practice, but that he could not help laying hold of
such an opportunity of expressing his sentiments in his
presence. Cromwell dismissed him with a caution, but
met with so many other instances of similar rebuffs from
the Scotch clergy, that he thought it unadvisable to
pursue any more severe course. Durham was a man of such
moderation of temper and sentiment, as to be able to conduct himself without giving much offence in those troublesome times, and gained the favour of all parties by the
conscientious discharge of his pastoral duties. This character gave him unusual authority in the country where he
lived; but his incessant labours both as a preacher and
writer brought on a consumptive disorder, of which he died
June 25, 1658, in the prime of life. He wrote, 1. “A
Commentary on the Revelations.
” 2. “Sermons on the
liii. of Isaiah.
” 3. “Sermons on the Song of Solomon.
”
4. “A treatise on Scandal.
” 5. “An Exposition of the
Commandments:
” the two latter posthumous; with some
single sermons and pious tracts, which have been often
reprinted.
, a French writer of distinguished taste and talents, was born at Chartres, Dec.
, a French writer of distinguished
taste and talents, was born at Chartres, Dec. 28, 1728, of
a family which made a considerable figure in the profession
of the law. He appears to have first served in the army
under the marechal Richelieu, and was noted for his courage. On his return to Paris, by the advice of the learned
professor Guerin, he devoted his time to literature, and
was in 1776 admitted a member of the academy of inscriptions. On the breaking out of the revolution, although
chosen into the convention, he was too moderate for the
times, and was imprisoned, and probably would have ended
his days on the scaffold, had not Marat obtained his pardon
by representing him as an old dotard, from whom nothing
was to be feared. In 1797 he was chosen a member of
the council of ancients, and on that occasion delivered a
long speech against the plan of a national lottery. He
died March 16, 1799. His principal works are, 1. A
French translation of Juvenal, by far the best that ever
appeared in that language, and which he enriched with
many valuable notes. It was first published in 1770, 8vo,
in a very correct and elegant manner, and was reprinted
in 1796. 2. “De la passion du Jeu,
” Sur la suppression
des Jeux de Hazard,
” probably a repetition of what he had
advanced before. 3. “Eloge de l'abbe Blanches,
” prefixed to his works. 4. “Memoire sur les Satiriques Latins,
”
in the 43d vol. of the Memoirs of the academy of inscriptions. 5. “Voyage a Barrege et dans les hautes Pyrenees,
”
Mes rapports avec J. J.Rousseau,
”
s full intention in this work, many of his positions being rather the whims and caprices of a lively writer, in support of a pre-conceived theory, yet he has at least proved
With this gentleman he left London in October of that
year, and when Mr. M‘Kenzie returned to England in 1760,
Mr. Dutens filled the honourable situation of charg6 des
affaires at Turin till May 1762, when he rejoined Mr.
M’Kenzie at London, and assisted him as one of the members of lord Bute’s administration. Before this administration closed he obtained a handsome pension; and shortly
after was invited to resume his situation as charge des affaires at Turin, a place to which he manifested an evident
partiality. He continued two years at Turin, and at his
leisure hours planned an edition of Leibnitz’s works, which
was published in six vols. 4to, at Geneva, in 1768, and
evinced the serious attention which he had bestowed on
the opinions of that philosopher, and his extensive correspondence at this time with many of the most learned men
in Europe. At Turin also he displayed a very intimate
acquaintance with the philosophy, arts, &c. of ancient and
modern times, by his “Recherches sur l'Origine des Deeouvertes,
” &c. a work in which he endeavours to prove
that our most celebrated philosophers have been indebted
to the ancients for the greatest part of their knowledge.
This was published at Paris, 1766, 2 vols. 8vo, and afterwards translated into English and published at London.
Although it cannot be said that Mr. Dutens has accomplished his full intention in this work, many of his positions
being rather the whims and caprices of a lively writer, in
support of a pre-conceived theory, yet he has at least
proved that much of his own time had been devoted to the
inquiry, and that his range of reading had been very extensive.
the knowledge of human nature, it will not perhaps create an unmixed regard for the character of the writer.
Before he quitted Turin, Mr. M'Kenzie’s interest with
the duke of Northumberland, then lord lieutenant of Ireland, procured him the promise of a deanery in that
kingdom, which he declined accepting; but soon after received
from the same noble patron a presentation to the rectory
of Elsdon in Northumberland, then worth 800l. a year;
which induced him, in 1766, to return to England, where
he received a present of 1000l. from the king, and was
highly delighted with the reception he met with at Northumberland-house. In 1768 he performed an extensive
tour through the continent with lord Algernon Percy, the
duke of Northumberland’s son. In the course of this tour,
some conversation at Genoa with the marchioness of Babbi,
gave rise to a work which Mr. Dutens afterwards published
at Rome under the title of “The Tocsin,
” and afterwards
at Paris, under the title of “Appel au bons sens.
” After
this tour was finished, he resided for some time at Paris,
where he published several works, and lived in a perpetual round of splendid amusements. In 1776 he returned
to London, and lived much with the Northumberland
family, and with his early patron Mr. M'Kenzie, until
lord Montstuart was appointed envoy-extraordinary to the
court of Turin, whom he accompanied as his friend, but
without any official situation, except that when lord
Montstuart was called to England upon private business,
he again acted for a short time as charge des affaires.
After this, according to his memoirs, his time was divided
for many years between a residence in London, and occasional tours to the continent, with the political affairs of
which he seems always anxious to keep up an intimate acquaintance. At length the death of his first friend and
patron placed him in easy if not opulent circumstances, as
that gentleman left him executor and residuary legatee
with his two nephews, lord Bute and the primate of Ireland. The value of this legacy has been estimated at
15,000l. which enabled Mr. Dutens to pass the remainder of
his life in literary retirement and social intercourse, for
which he was admirably qualified, not only by an extensive knowledge, but by manners easy and accommodating.
In the complimentary strain of a courtier few men exceeded
him, although his profuse liberality in this article was
sometimes thought to lessen its value. He died at his
house in Mount-street, Grosvenor-square, May 23, 1812,
in his eighty-third year. Not many days before his death,
he called, in a coach, on many persons of eminence with
whom he had corresponded, for the sole purpose of returning the letters he had received from them.
His publications, not already noticed were, 1 “Explications des quelques Medailles de peuple, de villes, et des
rois Grecques et Pheniciennes,
” Itineraire des Routes les plus frequentées;
ou Journal d‘un Voyage aux Villes principales de l’Europe,
”
often reprinted. 4. “Histoire de ce qui s’est passe
” pour
establissement d'une Regence en Angleterre. Par M.
L. D. Ne D. R. D. L. Ge. Be.“1789, 8vo; in which he
adopted the sentiments of Mr. Pitt’s administration on the
important question of the regency, which, he says, lost
him the favour of a great personage. 5.
” Recherches sur
le terns le plus recule de l'usage des Voutes chez les
Anciens,“1795. He wrote also the French text of the
second volume of the Marlborough gems, a task for which
he was well qualified, as he was an excellent classical antiquary and medallist. In 1771 he translated
” The manner of securing all sorts of brick buildings from fire,“&c.
from the French of count d'Espie. His last publication, in
1805, was his own history, in
” Memoires d'un Voyageur,"
&c. of which we have availed ourselves in this sketch but,
although this work may often amuse the reader, and add something to the knowledge of human nature, it will not perhaps
create an unmixed regard for the character of the writer.
lays are so pleasing, the images which they raise so welcome to the mind, and the reflections of the writer so consonant to the general sense or experience of mankind,
, an English poet, was born in 1700, the
second son of Robert Dyer, of Aberglasney, in Caermarthenshire, a solicitor of great capacity and note. He passed
through Westminster-school under the care of Dr. Freind,
and was then called home to be instructed in his father’s
profession. His genius, however, led him a different way;
for, besides his early taste for poetry, having a passion
no less strong for the arts of design, he determined to
make painting his profession. With this view, having
studied awhile under his master, he became, as he tells
his friend, an itinerant painter, and wandered about South
Wales and the parts adjacent; and about 1727 printed
“Grongar Hill,
” a poem which Dr. Johnson says, “is
not very accurately written but the scenes which it
displays are so pleasing, the images which they raise so welcome to the mind, and the reflections of the writer so
consonant to the general sense or experience of mankind,
that when it is once read, it will be read again.
” Being
probably unsatisfied with his own proficiency, he made the
tour of Italy; where, besides the usual study of the remains of antiquity, and the works of the great masters, he
frequently spent whole days in the country about Rome
and Florence, sketching those picturesque prospects with
facility and spirit. Images from hence naturally transferred themselves into his poetical compositions; the principal beauties of the “Ruins of Rome,
” are perhaps of
this kind, and the various landscapes in the “Fleece
”
have been particularly admired. On his return to England, he published the “Ruins of Rome,
”
Mr. Dyer’s character as a writer, has been fixed by three poems, “Grongar Hill,” “The Ruins of
Mr. Dyer’s character as a writer, has been fixed by three
poems, “Grongar Hill,
” “The Ruins of Rome,
” and
“The Fleece,
” in which a poetical imagination perfectly
original, a natural simplicity connected with the true sublime, and often productive of it, the warmest sentiments
of benevolence and virtue, have been universally observed
and admired. These pieces were published separately in
his life-time but after his death collected in 1 vol. 8vo,
1761; with a short account of himself prefixed.
This piece had a very rapid sale, and passed through many editions. It was attacked by an anonymous writer the following year, in “An Answer to a Letter of Enquiry into
, master of Catharine-hall, in the
university of Cambridge, and author of several ingenious
works, was descended from a good family in the county of
Suffolk, and born about 1636. Having been carefully
instructed in grammar and classical literature, he was sent
to Catharine-hall, in the university of Cambridge, where
he was admitted on the 10th of May, 1653. He took the
degree of B. A. in 1656, was elected fellow of his college 1
in 1658, and in 1660 became M. A. We meet with no
farther particulars about him till 1670, when he published,
but without his name, “The Grounds and Occasions of the
Contempt of the Clergy and Religion enquired into. In a
letter to R. L.
” This piece had a very rapid sale, and
passed through many editions. It was attacked by an
anonymous writer the following year, in “An Answer to a
Letter of Enquiry into the Grounds,
” &c. and by Barnabas Oley, and several others; particularly the famous Dr.
John Owen, in a preface to some sermons of W. Bridge.
Eachard replied to the first of his answerers in apiece
entitled “Some Observations upon the Answer to an Enquiry into the Grounds and Occasions of the Contempt of
the Clergy: with some additions. In a second letter to
R. L.
” In Mr. Hobbes’s State of
Nature considered: in a dialogue between Philautus and
Timothy. To which are added, five letters from the author of The Grounds and Occasions of the
” Contempt of
the Clergy.“In these letters he animadverted, with his
usual facetiousness, on several of the answerers of his first
performance. He soon after published some farther remarks on the writings of Hobbes, in
” A second Dialogue
between Philautus and Timothy." On the death of Dr.
John Lightfoot, in 1675, Mr. Eachard was chosen in his
room master. of Catharine-hall; and in the year following
he was created D. D. by royal mandamus. It does not
appear that he produced any literary works after being
raised to this station; but it is said that he executed the
trust reposed in him, of master of his college, with the
utmost care and fidelity, and to the general satisfaction of
the whole university. He was extremely desirous to have
rebuilt the greatest part, if not the whole, of Catharine-hall,
which had fallen ipto decay: but he died before he could
accomplish any part of that design, except the master’s
lodge. He contributed, however, largely towards rebuilding the whole; and was very assiduous in procuring donations for it from his learned or wealthy friends. He died
on the 7th of July, 1697, and was interred in the chapel
of Catharine-hall, with an elegant Latin inscription, said
to have been more recently added by the late Dr.
Farmer.
Young’s “Night Thoughts,” and Glover’s “Leonklas,” both which, we are told, are well executed. This writer died at Brunswick March 19, 1795.
, who was born at Hamburgh
Feb. 8, 1725, is ranked among the revivers of true literary
taste in Germany, in which undertaking, he associated
with Gartner, Schlegel, Cramer, Gellert, Rabener, Schmidt,
Klopstock, &c. who used to communicate their works to
each other, and diffuse various knowledge by means of
periodical papers. Ebert was professor of the Carolinean
Institute at Brunswick, and in high esteem with the duke,
who made him a canon of St. Cyriac, and afterwards conferred on him the title of counsellor. He wrote with equal
elegance in prose and verse, and his songs are much esteemed in Germany. Besides many contributions to the
periodical journals, he published two volumes of “Poems
”
at Hamburgh, the one in Night Thoughts,
” and Glover’s “Leonklas,
” both which,
we are told, are well executed. This writer died at
Brunswick March 19, 1795.
, Mowbray herald extraordinary, F. S. A. and an able heraldic writer, was a man who raised himself by dint of ingenuity and perseverance
, Mowbray herald extraordinary, F. S. A. and an able heraldic writer, was a man who
raised himself by dint of ingenuity and perseverance from
a very humble station to considerable celebrity. He was
originally an apprentice to a barber, but discovering some
knowledge of the art, became an herald painter, and was
much employed in emblazoning arms upon carriages. This
led him to study heraldry as a science, which imperceptibly
led him also to genealogical researches, and his progress
hi both was rapid and successful. When the baronets of
England wished for some augmentation to their privileges,
as appendages to their titles (in which, however, they were flot successful), they chose Mr. Edmoudson their secretary.
In 1764 he was appointed Mowbray herald extraordinary.
He died in Warwick-street, Golden -square, Feb. 17, 1786,
and was buried in the church-yard of St. James’s, Piccadilly. He was a man of good sense as well as skill in his
profession, and maintained an excellent private character.
His works, which will convey his name to posterity with
great credit, were, 1. “Historical account of the Grevillc
Family, with an account of Warwick Castle,
” Lond. A Companion to the Peerage of Great Britain
and Ireland,
” ibid. A Complete Body of
Heraldry,
” ibid. Buronagium Genealogicum, or
The Pedigree of English Peers,
”
, a famous presbyterian writer in the seventeenth century, and a bitter enemy to the independents,
, a famous presbyterian writer
in the seventeenth century, and a bitter enemy to the independents, who then bore sway in this kingdom, was
educated in Trinity-college, in Cambridge, where he took
the degree of B. A. in 1605, and that of M. A. in 1609.
He was incorporated M. A. at Oxford, July 14, 1623.
Where and what his preferments were, we do not find;
but we learn from himself, that though he conformed, yet
he was always a puritan in his heart. He exercised his
ministry, chiefly as a lecturer, at Hertford, and at several
places in and about London; and was sometimes brought
into trouble for opposing the received doctrines, or not
complying duly with the established church. When the
long parliament declared against Charles I. our author
espoused their cause, and by all his actions, sermons,
prayers, praises, and discourses, earnestly promoted their
interest. But, when the independent party began to assume the supreme authority, he became as furious against
them as he had been against the royalists, and wrote the
following pieces against them: 1. “Reasons against the
Independent Government of particular Congregations,
”
&c. Lond. Antapologia,
”
or a full answer to the “Apologeticall Narration of Mr.
Goodwin, Mr. Nye, Mr. Simpson, Mr. Burroughs, Mr.
Bridge, members of the assembly of divines. Wherein is
handled many of the controversies of these times; viz. I.
Of a particular visible church. II. Of classes and synods.
III. Of the Scriptures, how farre a rule for church government. IV. Of formes of prayer. V. Of the
qualifications of church members. 6.
” Of submission and noncommunion. VII. Of excommunication. VIII. Of the
power of the civill magistrate in ecclesiasticals. IX. Of
separation and schisme. X. Of tolerations, and particularly of the toleration of independencie. XI. Of suspension from the Lord’s supper. XII. Of ordination of ministers by the people. XIII. Of church covenant. XIV.
Of non-residencie of church-members,“Lond. 1644, 4to.
3.
” Gangnrna: or a catalogue and discovery of many of
the errours, heresies, blasphemies, and pernicious practices of the sectaries of this time, vented and acted in England in these four last years as also a particular narration
of divers stories, remarkable passages, letters an extract
of many letters, concerning the present sects together
with some observations upon, and corollaries from, all the
forenamed premisses,“Lond. 1G46, 4to, reprinted afterwards. 4.
” The second part of C'angrjena,“&c. Lond.
1646, 4to. 5.
” The third part of Gangracna; or, A new
and higher discovery of the errors, heresies, blasphemies,
and insolent proceedings of the sectaries of these times;
with some animadversions, by way of confutation, upon
many of the errors and heresies named.“In these three
parts of Gangrsena, he gives catalogues of the errors of the
independents, and exposes the errors of the other sectaries
of his time, in a manner which could not fail to render him
particularly obnoxious to them, but at the same time in
such a spirit of bitter invective, as must render many of
his facts doubtful. He also published,' 6.
” The casting
down of the last and strongest hold of Satan; or, a Treatise against Toleration,“Part I. Lond. 1647, 4to. 7.
” Of
the particular visibility of the Church.“8.
” A treatise
of the Civil Power of Ecclesiasticals, and of suspension,
from the Lord’s supper,“Lond. 1642, 1644. He promised several other pieces, but it does not appear that he
published them; particularly, 1. A fourth Part of his
Gangracna. 2. An Historical Narration of all the proceedings and ways of the English Sectaries. 3. Catalogue
of the Judgments of God upon the Sectaries within these
four years last past. 4. Many Tractates against the errors
of the times. He promised likewise to resemble that tree
spoken of in the Revelation, to yield fruit every month
i. e. to be often setting forth one tractate or other but we
do not hear of more than have been enumerated. As for
his character, he professes himself
” a plain, open-hearted
man, who hated tricks, reserves, and designs;" zealous
for the assembly of divines, the directory, the use of the
Lord’s Prayer, singing of Psalms, &c. and so earnest for
what he took to be truth, that he was usually called in
Cambridge, young Luther.
, an eminent English divine and voluminous writer, the son of the preceding Thomas Edwards, was born at Hertford,
, an eminent English divine and
voluminous writer, the son of the preceding Thomas Edwards, was born at Hertford, February 26, 1637. His
father, as we have already noticed, died in 1647, and by
his wife, who was an heiress of a very considerable fortune,
he left one daughter and four sons, the second of whom
was John, the subject of the present narrative. After
having received his grammatical education at Merchanttaylors’ school, in London, he was removed in 1653 to the
university of Cambridge, and was admitted of St. John’s
college, then under the government of Dr. Anthony Tuckney, a presbyterian divine of acknowledged character and
learning, and particularly distinguished for the wise and
exact discipline of his college. Mr. Edwards, soon after
his admission, was chosen scholar of the house, and was
quickly taken notice of for his exercises, both in his tutor’s
chamber, and in his college-hall. Towards the close of
his undergraduateship, the senior proctor being then of
the college, he was appointed one of the moderators for
the year. Whe: he was middle bachelor, he was elected
a fellow of his college, for which he was principally indebted to the exertions of Dr. Tuckney in his behalf.
During the time of his senior bachelorship he was again
chosen moderator in the schools, and his performances
were long remembered with esteem and praise. In 1661
he was admitted to the degree of M. A.; and soon after sir
Robert Carr presented him to Dr. Sanderson, bishop cf
Lincoln, who conferred upon him the order of deacon.
That learned prelate engaged him, at the same time, to
preach a sermon at the next ordination, when with the
other candidates, he was ordained priest. In 1664, he
undertook the duty of Trinity-church, in Cambridge, and
went through the whole both parts of the day. In his
preaching, without affecting eloquence, he studied to
be plain, intelligible, and practical; and his church was
much frequented by the gown, and by persons of considerable standing in the university. Dr. Sparrow, master of
Queen’s, Dr. Beaumont, master of Peterhouse, and Dr.
Pearson, master of Trinity-college, were often heard to
applaud his pulpit performances. In 1665, during the
time of the plague, he quitted his residence in the college,
and dwelt all that year, and part of the next, in the town,
that he might devote himself entirely to the edification and
comfort of the parishioners of Trinity church, in that
season of calamity. A little after this, sir Edward Atkins
offered him a good living near Cirencester, in Gloucestershire, but he chose to continue in his station at Cambridge.
In 1668 he was admitted to the degree of B. D. About
the same time, through the interest of sir Robert Carr
with sir Thomas Harvey, Mr. Edwards was unanimously
chosen lecturer at St. Edmund’s Bury, with a salary of
loo/, a year. This office he discharged with great reputation and acceptance, notwithstanding which, after a period of twelve months, he resigned it, and returned to his
college, where, however, his situation was uneasy to him.
He had not been upon the best terms with Dr. Peter Gunning, the former master of St. John’s, and being still more
dissatisfied with Dr. Francis Turner, Gunning’s successor,
who had somehow offended him, he determined to resign
his fellowship. On quitting his college, he was presented
by the fellows with a testimonial of his worthy and laudable
behaviour among them. From St. John’s he removed to
Trinity-hall, where he entered himself as a fellow-commoner, and performed the regular exercises in the civil
Jaw. Being willing to be employed in the offices of jits
clerical function, he accepted of the invitation of the parishioners of St. Sepulchre, in Cambridge, to be their minister; and his sermons there were as much attended by
persons of consequence in the university as they had formerly been at Trinity church. In 1676 Mr. Edwards married Mrs. Lane, the widow of Mr. Lane, who had been ati
alderman, a justice of peace, and an eminent attomey in
the town. “This gentlewoman,
” says his biographer,
“was an extraordinary person, of unusual accomplishments
and singular graces but had the unhappiness (as some others of that sex) to be misrepresented to the world. She
being naturally of a high and generous spirit, and not
framed to low observances and vulgar compliances, incurred thereby the imputation of pride and superciliousness
among vulgar minds. But those who were no strangers to
good breeding, and knew how to make distinction of persons, admired the agreeableness of her conversation, and
saw those excellent and worthy things in her deportment
which they could find but in very few of her sex. She
understood herself and her duty, and all the rules of civil
and religious behaviour.
”
, an English divine and able writer against Socinianism, was born at Wrexham in Denbighshire in
, an English divine and able
writer against Socinianism, was born at Wrexham in Denbighshire in 1629; and in 1655 became a servitor of Christ
church, Oxford, where he was admitted B. A. in Oct. 1659;
elected fellow of Jesus college in 1662, and took his bachelor’s degree in divinity in March 1669. He was afterwards rector of Kiddington in Oxfordshire, which he exchanged, in 1681, for Hinton in Hampshire. On Nov. 2,
1636, he was unanimously elected principal of Jesus college,
and became treasurer of Llandaff in 1687. He took his
degree of D. D. immediately after his election as principal,
and served the office of vice-chancellor in the years 1689,
1690, and 1691. He held two other livings, one in Anglesea and the other in Caernarvonshire. He was also
proctor in the convocation, 1702, for the chapter of Llandaff. He died July 20, 1712, and was buried in the chapel of his college, where is an inscription celebrating his
learning, usefulness as principal, and his munificence as a
benefactor. Besides many books given in his life-time, he
bequeathed his own collection of upwards of 1000 volumes
to the college library, and gave near 1000l. to the repairs
of the chapel, &c. What he wrote against the Socinians
is entitled “A Preservative against Socinianism
” in four
parts, 4to, published from
w lost. He is mentioned by Puttenham, as gaining the prize for comedy and interlude. Besides being a writer of regular dramas, he appears to have been a contriver of masques,
, one of our ancient English
poets, was born in Somersetshire in 1523, and admitted
scholar of Corpus Christi college, Oxford, under the tuition
of George Etheridge, May 11, 1540, and probationer fellow Aug. 11, 1514. In 1547, when Christ church was
founded by Henry VIII. he was admitted student of the
upper table, and the same year took his master’s degree.
Warton cites a passage from his poems to prove that in his
early years, he was employed in some department about
the court. In the British Museum there is a small set of
manuscript sonnets, signed with his initials, addressed to
some of the beauties of the courts of queen Mary and
queen Elizabeth. He therefore probably did not remain
long at the university. In the beginning of Elizabeth’s
reign, he was made one of the gentlemen of her chapel, and
master of the children there, having the character of not
only being an excellent musician, but an exact poet, as
many of his compositions in music and poetry testify. For
these he was highly valued, by those who knew him, especially his associates in Lincoln’s- Inn (of which he was a member), and much lamented by them when he died.
This event, according to sir John Hawkins, happened Oct.
31, 1556, but others say in 1566. He wrote “Damon
and Pythias,
” a comedy, acted at court and in the university, first printed in 1570, or perhaps’ in 1565, and “Palamon and Arcyte,
” another comedy in two parts, probably never printed, but acted in Christ-church hall, 1566,
before queen Elizabeth, of which performance Wood gives
a curious account. Warton thinks it probable that he
wrote many other dramatic pieces now lost. He is mentioned by Puttenham, as gaining the prize for comedy and
interlude. Besides being a writer of regular dramas, he
appears to have been a contriver of masques, and a composer of poetry for pageants. In a word, he united all
those arts and accomplishments which ministered to popular pleasantry, in an age when the taste of the courtiers
was not of a much higher order than that of the vulgar in
our time. His English poems, for he wrote also Latin
poetry, are for the most part extant in “The Paradise of
Dainty Devises,
” Lond. Bibliographer,
” where, as well as in our other authorities, are some farther notices of Edwards. It is justly observed by Warton, that his popularity seems to have altogether arisen from those pleasing talents, of which no specimens could be transmitted to posterity, and which prejudiced his partial contemporaries in favour of his poetry.
, a critic and poetical writer, was born in 1691), in or near the city of London, and was a
, a critic and poetical writer, was
born in 1691), in or near the city of London, and was a
younger son of Edwards, esq. a gentleman in the
profession of the law. His grandfather had been of the
same profession. The principal part of his grammatical
education he is said to have received at a private school,
and never was a member of either of the universities. At
a proper age he was entered of Lincoln’s Inn and, in due
time, was called to the bar but, having a considerable
hesitation in his speech, he was discouraged from engaging
much in the practice of the law. Although he never appears to have fallen into that dissipation which is sometimes
chargeable upon young gentlemen of the inns of court, it
may be conjectured, from his subsequent publications, that
he applied himself more assiduously to the cultivation of
the belles lettres than to the severer studies belonging to
his profession. Shakspeare, in particular, was the object
of his warmest admiration and most sedulous attention;
and to this circumstance Mr. Edwards is principally indebted for his literary reputation. His first appearance
from the press was in a pamphlet published, in 1744, and
entitled “A Letter to the author of a late Epistolary Dedication, addressed to Mr. Warburton.
” This was the beginning of our author’s attack upon that famous writer;
which was followed, in 1747, by “A Supplement to Mr.
Warburton’s edition of Shakspeare,
” a performance so well
received, that two impressions of it were printed in the
same year. A third edition of it appeared in 1748, under
the title of “The Canons of Criticism, and a Glossary,
being a Supplement to Mr. Warburton’s edition of Shaky
speare. Collected from the notes in that celebrated work,
and proper to be bound up with it. By the other gentleman of Lincoln’s Inn;
” which title the book has ever since
retained. The expression of “the other gentleman of
Lincoln’s Inn,
” refers to a previous controversy of Warburton’s, upon a different topic, with another member of
that society. Mr. Warburton, in the preface to his edition of Shakspeare, declares that it had been once his
design to give the reader a body of canons for literary criticism, drawn out in form, together with a glossary; but
that he had laid aside his purpose, as these uses might be
well supplied by what he had occasionally said upon the
subject in the course of his remarks. This idea Mr. Edwards humourously took up, and from the notes and corrections of Warburton’s Shakspeare, has framed a set of
canons ridiculously absurd, each of which is confirmed and
illustrated by examples taken from the edition in question;
and it cannot be denied that Mr. Edwards has perfectly
succeeded in his attempt, and that through the whole of
his work he has displayed his wit, his learning, and his
intimate acquaintance with Shakspeare; but such an attack
upon Warburton, though conducted with pleasantry rather
than ill-nature, was too formidable to avoid exciting resentment. Accordingly, Warburton introduced Mr. Edwards into the next edition of Pope’s “Dunciad
” in a note
under the following lines in the fourth book of that work:
alculated sometimes, perhaps, rather a little more to raise the reputation of their author as a fine writer, than to edify the ministry and advance religion. Of the charges
, late bishop of Durham, a descendant of the preceding, was the son of Henry Egerton, bishop of Hereford (fifth son of John third earl of Bridgewater, by lady Jane Powlett, first daughter of Charles duke of Bolton), who marrying lady Elizabeth Ariana Bentinck, daughter of William earl of Portland, had by her one daughter and five sons, of whom John was the eldest. He was born in London, on the 30th of November, 1721, was educated at Eton school, and admitted a gentleman commoner in Oriel college, Oxford, upon the 20th of May 1740, under the tuition of the rev. Dr. Bentham, afterwards regius professor of divinity in that university, where he prosecuted his studies extensively and successfully for six or seven years. He was ordained deacon privately by Dr. Benjamin Hoadly, bishop of Worcester, in Grosvenor chapel, Westminster, on the 21st of Dec. 1745, and the following day he was ordained priest, at a general ordination holden by the same bishop in the same place. On the 23d he was collated by his father to the living of Ross in Herefordshire, and on the 28th was inducted by Robert Breton archdeacon of Hereford. On the 3d of January 1746 (a short time before his father’s death, which happened on the 1st of April following), he was collated to the canonry or prebend of Cublington, in the church of Hereford. Upon the 30th of May 1746, he took the degree of bachelor of civil law, for which he went out grand compounder. On the 21st of November 1748 he married Indy Anne Sophia, daughter of Henry de Grey, duke of Kent, by Sophia, daughter of William Bentinck, earl of Portland. He was appointed chaplain in ordinary to the king upon the lyth of March 1749; and was promoted to the deanery of Hereford on the 24th of July 1750. He was consecrated bishop of Bangor on the 4th of July 1756, at Lambeth; and had the temporalities restored to him upon the 22d, previously to which, on the 21st of May, the university of Oxford conferred upon him the degree of LL. D. by diploma, and he was empowered to hold the living of Ross, and the prebend of Cublington, with that bishopric, in commendam, dated the 1st of July. On the 12th of November 1768, he was translated to the see of Lichfield and Coventry, with which he held the prebend of Weldland, and residentiary ship of St. Paul’s, and also the two preferments before mentioned. He was inducted, installed, and enthroned at Lichfield by proxy, upon the 22d of November, and had the temporalities restored upon, the 26th. On the death of Dr. Richard Trevor, he was elected to the see of Durham, upon the 8th of July 1771, and was confirmed on the 20th in St. James’s church, Westminster. Upon the 2d of August following he was enthroned and installed at Durham by proxy. The temporalities of the see were restored to his lordship on the 15th of August, and on the 3d of September he made his public entry into his palatinate. On his taking possession of the bishopric, he found the county divided by former contested elections, which had destroyed the general peace: no endeavours were wanting on his part to promote and secure a thorough reconciliation of contending interests, on terms honourable and advantageous to all; and when the affability, politeness, and condescension, for which he was distinguished, uniting in a person of his high character and station, had won the affections of ll parties to himself, he found less difficulty in reconciling them to each other, and had soon the high satisfaction to see men of the first distinction in the county conciliated by his means, and meeting in good neighbourhood at his princely table. The harmony he had so happily restored, he was equally studious to preserve, which he effectually did, by treating the nobility and gentry of the county at all times with a proper regard, by paying an entire and impartial attention to their native interests, by forbearing to improve any opportunities of influencing their parliamentary choice in favour of his own family or particular friends, and by consulting on all occasions the honour of the palatinate. The same conciliating interposition he had used in the county, he employed in the city of Durham with the same success. At the approach of the general election in 1780 he postponed granting the Mew charter, which would considerably enlarge the number of voters, till some months after the election, that he might maintain the strictest neutrality between the candidates, and avoid even the imputation of partiality; and when he confirmed it, and freely restored to the city all its ancient rights, privileges, and immunities, in the most ample and advantageous form, he selected the members of the new corporation, with great care, out of the most moderate and respectable of the citizens, regardless of every consideration but its peace and due regulation; objects which he steadily held in view, and in the attainment of which he succeeded to his utmost wish, and far beyond his expectation. A conduct equally calculated to promote order and good government, he displayed, if possible, still more conspicuously in the spiritual than in the temporal department of his double office. Towards the chapter, and towards the body of the clergy at large, he exercised every good office, making them all look up to him as their common friend and father: and to those who had enjoyed the special favour of his predecessor, he was particularly kind and attentive, both from a sense of their merit, and that he might mitigate in some degree their loss of so excellent a friend and patron. In the discharge of all his episcopal functions, he was diligent and conscientious. He was extremely scrupulous whom he admitted into orders, in respect of their learning, character, and religious tenets. In his visitations, he urged and enforced the regularity, the decorum, and the well-being of the church, by a particular inquiry into the conduct of its ministers, encouraging them to reside upon their several henetices, and manifesting upon all opportunities, a sincere and active concern for the interests and accommodation of the inferior clergy. His charges were the exact transcripts of his mind. Objections have been made to some compositions of this kind, that they bear the resemblance of being as specious as sincere, and are calculated sometimes, perhaps, rather a little more to raise the reputation of their author as a fine writer, than to edify the ministry and advance religion. Of the charges his lordship delivered, it may truly be said, that, upon such occasions, he recommended nothing to his clergy which he did not practise in his life, and approve of in his closet.
, of the Palatinate, an able writer against the Jews, was born at Manheim, in 1654, was educated
, of the Palatinate,
an able writer against the Jews, was born at Manheim, in
1654, was educated at Heidelberg, and afterwards, at the
expence of the elector palatine, travelled in Holland and
England. At Amsterdam he applied himself to the study
of the Arabic, and copied the Alcoran with his own hand
from three manuscripts. In 1693 when the palatinate was
invaded, he retired to Francfort, with the electoral regency, and was made keeper of the archives. He was
next advanced to the office of registrar of the electoral
chancery at Heidelberg, and afterwards appointed professor of the oriental languages. He had also an invitation to
succeed Leusden at Utrecht, but declined it, and died at
Heidelberg, Dec. 20, 1704. Having very much studied
the Talmudical writings, he was desirous to convince the
Jews of their folly in preferring the oral to the written law,
the traditions of men to the precepts of God, and the Talmud to the Holy Scriptures. With this view he took
great pains to collect all the fables, allegories, and contradictions in the Talmud and other rabbinical works, and
published this collection in 2 vols. 4to, at Francfort, under
the title of “Judaism discovered,
” but the Jews had interest enough at the court of Vienna to interdict the sale
of it. At length the king of Prussia ordered it to be reprinted at Konigsberg in 1711, at his sole expence, and
with great liberality gave a part of the impression to the
heirs of Eisenmenger, to recompense them for their loss.
In 1743, an abridgement of this work was published in
English by the rev. John Peter Stehelin, London, 2 vols.
8vo, under the title “The Traditions of the Jews, or the
Doctrines and Expositions contained in the Talmud, and
other Rabbinnical writings,
” &c. This is a work of great
curiosity, and the first in which the English public was
made acquainted with the traditions of the Jews.
, a miscellaneous writer of some reputation in the last age, and well known to the scholars
, a miscellaneous writer of some reputation in the last age, and well known to the scholars of that
period, was the son of Mr. James Ellis, and was born in
the parish of St. Clement Danes, March 22, 1698. His
father was a man of an eccentric character, roving, and
unsettled. At one time he was clerk to his uncle and
guardian, serjeant Denn, recorder of Canterbury, and kept
his chambers in Gray’s-inn, on a starving allowance, as
Mr. Ellis used to declare, for board-wages. Leaving his
penurious relation, who spent what his father left him in a
litigious process, he obtained a place in the post-office at
Deal in Kent, from whence he was advanced, to be searcher
of the customs in the Downs, with a boat; but being imposed upon, as he thought, in some way by his patron, he
quitted his employment and came to London. He was represented by his son as particularly skilful in the use of
the sword, to which qualification he was indebted, through
the means of a nobleman, for one of his places. He was
also much famed for his agility, and could at one time
jump the wall of Greenwich park, with the assistance of a
staff. At the trial of Dr. Sacheverel he was employed to
take down the evidence for the doctor’s use. His wife,
Susannah Philpot, our author’s mother, was so strict a
dissenter, that when Dr. Sacheverel presented her husband
with his print, framed and glazed, she dashed it on the
ground, and broke it to pieces, calling him at the same
time a priest of Baal; and at a late period of our author’s
life, it was remembered by him, that she caused him to
undergo the discipline of the school, for only presuming
to look at a top on a Sunday which had been given to him
the day preceding. The qualifications which Mr. Ellis’s
father possessed, it will be perceived, were not those which
lead to riches; and indeed so narrow were his circumstances, that he was unable to give his son the advantages
of a liberal education. He was first sent to a wretched
day-school in Dogwell-court, White Fryars, with a brother and two sisters; and afterwards was removed to another, not much superior, in Wine-office-court, Fleet-street,
where he learned the rudiments of grammar, more by his
own application than by any assistance of his master. He
used, however, to acknowledge the courtesy of the usher,
who behaved well to him. While at this school he translated “Mars ton Moore; sive, de obsidione praelioque Eboracensi carmen. Lib. 6. 1650, 4to. Written by Payne
Fisher;
” which, as it has not been found among his papers, we suppose was afterwards destroyed. At what period, or in what capacity he was originally placed with
Mr. John Taverner, an eminent scrivener in Threadneedlestreet, we have not learned; but in whatever manner the
connexion began, he in due time became clerk or apprentice to him; and during his residence had an opportunity
of improving himself in the Latin tongue, which he availed
himself of with the utmost diligence. The son of his
master, then at Merchant Taylors’ school, was assisted by his
father in his daily school-exercises; which being conducted
in the presence of the clerk, it was soon found that the
advantage derived from the instructions, though missed by
the person for whom it was intended, was not wholly lost.
Mr. Ellis eagerly attended, and young Taverner being of
an indolent disposition, frequently asked his assistance privately; which at length being discovered by the elder Taverner, was probably the means of his first introduction
to the world, though it cannot be said much to his advantage, as old Taverner had the address to retain him in the
capacity of his clerk during his life-time, and at his death
incumbered him with his son as a partner, by whose imprudence Mr. Ellis was a considerable sufferer both in his
peace of mind and his purse, and became involved in difficulties which hung over him a considerable number of
years. His literary acquisitions soon, as it might be expected, introduced him to the acquaintance of those who
had similar pursuits. In 1721, the rev. Mr. Fayting, afterwards of Merchant Taylors’ school, rector of St. Martin
Outwich, and prebendary of Lincoln, being then about to
go to Cambridge, solicited and obtained his correspondence, part of which was carried on in verse. With this
gentleman, who died 22d Feb. 1789, in his eighty-sixth
year, Mr. Ellis lived on terms of the most unreserved
friendship, and on his death received a legacy of 100l. bequeathed to him by his will. At a period rather later, he
became also known to the late Dr. King of Oxford. Young
Taverner, who probably was not at first intended for a
scrivener, was elected from Merchant Taylors’ school to
St. John’s college, Oxford, and by his means Mr. Ellis
was made acquainted with the tory orator. By Dr. King
he was introduced to his pupil lord Orrery; and Mr. Ellis
atone time spent fourteen days in their company at college,
so much to the satisfaction of all parties, that neither the
nobleman nor his tutor ever afterwards came to London
without visiting, and inviting Mr. Ellis to visit them. In,
the years 1742 and 1713, Dr. King published “Templum
Libertatis,
” in two books, which Mr. Ellis translated into
verse with the entire approbation of the original author.
This translation still remains in ms. Of his poetical
friends, however, the late Moses Mendez, esq. appears to
have been the most intimate with him. Several marks of
that gentleman’s friendship are to be found scattered
through his printed works; and about 1749 he addressed a
beautiful epistle to him from Ham, never yet published.
In 1744 Mr. Mendez went to Ireland, and on July 5 sent
a poetical account of his journey to Mr. Ellis. This epistle
was afterwards printed in 1767, in -a collection of poems,
and in the same miscellany Mr. Ellis’s answer appeared.
Soon after Mr. Mendez addressed a poetical epistle to his
friend, Mr. S. Tucker, at Dulwich, printed in the sam
collection.
, a writer of some reputation among the Quakers, was born at Crowell, near
, a writer of some reputation
among the Quakers, was born at Crowell, near Thame, in
Oxfordshire, in 1639, where he received such education
as his father, a man in poor circumstances, could afford.
In his twenty-first year, the preaching of one Edward Burroughs induced him to join the society of the friends, and
soon after he became a writer and a preacher among them.
His principal work was entitled “Sacred History, or the
historical part of the Holy Scriptures of the Old and New
Testament,
” 2 vols. fol. He appears to have sometimes
uffered imprisonment in the reign of Charles II. in common with other dissenters; but his confinement on these
occasions was neither long nor severe. The only incident
in his life worth noticing is his introduction to Milton, to
whom he acted for some time as reader, and to whom he is
said to have suggested the “Paradise Regained,
” by asking
him, “Thou hast said much here of Paradise lost; but
what hast thou to say of Paradise found?
” Ellwood died
March 1, 1713. He was a man of considerable abilities,
and by dint of study and attention made up for the deficiencies of his early education. His life, written by himself, is rather tedious, but affords many interesting particulars of the history of the sect.
eing noticed by Dr. Burney in his History of Music, has probably escaped the researches of that able writer. In all these sir Richard Ellys shows a vast compass of ancient
Besides his literary friends at home, sir Richard appears
to have corresponded with, and to have been highly
respected by many eminent scholars on the continent. He
was a munificent patron of men of learning, and frequently
contributed to the publication of their works, at a time
when the risks of publication were more terrible than in
our days. It was not unfrequent, therefore, to honour him
by dedications. The Weuteins dedicated to him the best
edition of Suicer’s “Thesaurus Ecclesiast.
” to which he
bad contributed the use of a manuscript of Suicer’s in his
own possession, and Ab. Gronovius dedicated to him his
edition of Ælian (Leyden, 1731). Horsley’s “Britannia
Romana
” was also dedicated to him. He was the steady
friend and patron of Michael Maittaire, who, in his “Seoilia,
” addresses many verses to him, from some of which
we learn that sir Richard had travelled much abroad, that
his pursuits were literary, and that he collected a curious
and valuable library . The only work by which his merits
as a scholar and critic can now be ascertained, was published at Rotterdam, in 1728, 8vo, under the title “Fortuita Sacra, quibus subjicitur Commentarius de Cymbalis.
” The epithet fortuita is used as denoting that the
explanation of the several passages in the New Testament,
of which the volume partly consists, casually offered themselves. The whole indeed was written in the course of
his private studies, and without any view to publication,
until some friends, conceiving that they would form an
acceptable present to the literary world, prevailed on him
to allow a selection to be made, which was probably done
by the anonymous editor of the volume; and they are
written in Latin with a view to appear on the continent,
where biblical criticism, although not perhaps at that lime
more an object of curiosity than at home, required to be
conveyed in a language common to the learned. Subjoined
to these critical essays on various difficult texts, which the
author illustrates from the Misnah and other books of Jewish
traditions, is a curious dissertation on the cymbals of the
ancients, which not being noticed by Dr. Burney in his
History of Music, has probably escaped the researches of
that able writer. In all these sir Richard Ellys shows a
vast compass of ancient learning, and a coolness of judgment in criticism, which very considerably advanced his
fame abroad. We know but of one answer to any of his
positions, entitled “A Dissertation on 1 Cor. xv. 29; or
an Inquiry into the Apostle’s meaning there, of being
`baptized for the dead,' occasioned by the honourable and
learned author of the Fortuita Sacra his interpretation
thereof.
” This Inquiry is conveyed in a letter to the author
ef the Republic of Letters, vol. V. (1730).
, a miscellaneous writer and schoolmaster, was born at Edinburgh, Dec. 6, 1721, and was
, a miscellaneous writer and
schoolmaster, was born at Edinburgh, Dec. 6, 1721, and
was the son of the Rev. William Elphinston. He was educated at the high school of Edinburgh, and afterwards at
the university, where, or soon after he left it, and when
only in his seventeenth year, he was appointed tutor to
lord Blantyre, a circumstance which seems to indicate that
his erudition was extraordinary, or his place nominal.
When of age he accompanied Carte, the historian, on a
tour through Holland and Brabant, and to Paris, where he
acquired such a knowledge of the French language as to
be able to speak and write it with the greatest facility. On
leaving France he returned to Scotland, and became private tutor to the son of James Moray, esq. of Abercairny,
in Perthshire, and an inmate in the family. How long he
remained here is uncertain, but in 1750 he was at Edinburgh, and superintended an edition of Dr. Johnson’s
“Ramblers,
” by the author’s permission, with a translation of the mottos, which was completed in 8 vols. 12 mo,
beautifully printed, but imperfect, as being without the
alterations and additions introduced in the subsequent editions by Dr. Johnson. In 1751 he married, and leaving
Scotland, fixed his abode near London, first at Brompton,
and afterwards at Kensington, where for many years he
kept a school in a large and elegant house opposite to the
royal gardens, and had considerable reputation; his scholars always retaining a very grateful sense of his skill as a
teacher, and his kindness as a friend.
ampridius and Herodian. Selden, however, thought that he translated a Greek ms. composed by a modern writer. It is not on Bayle’s authority that we should chuse to rank
The works of sir Thomas Elyot were, 1. “The Castle
of Health,
” Lond. 1580, 1595, &c. in 8vo.
2.
” The Governor,“in three books, Lond. 1531, 154.4,
1547, 1557, 1580, &c. in 8vo. 3.
” Of the Education of
Children,“Load, irt 4to. 4.
” The Banquet of Sapience,“Lond. in 8vo. 5.
” De Rebus Memorabilibus Angliee,“for
the completing of which he had perused many old English
monuments. 6.
” A Defence or Apology for good Women.“7.
” Bibliotheca Eliotae: Elyot’s Library, or Dictionary,“Lond. 1541, &c. fol. which woik Cooper augmented and enriched with thirty-three thousand words and
phrases, besides a fuller account of the true signification
qf word*. Sir Thomas translated likewise, from Greek
into English,
” The Image of Governance, compiled of
the Acts and Sentences by the Emperor Alexander Severus,“Lond. 1556, 1594, &c. in 8vo. Bayle accuses him
of having pretended to translate this from a Greek ms.
whereas he says he borrowed his materials from Lampridius and Herodian. Selden, however, thought that he
translated a Greek ms. composed by a modern writer. It
is not on Bayle’s authority that we should chuse to rank
such a man as sir T. Elyot among impostors. He also
translated from Latin into English, 1.
” St. Cyprian’s
Sermon of the Mortality of Man,“Lond. 1534, in 8vo.
2.
” The Rule of a Christian Life," written by Picus earl
of Mirandola, Lond. 1534, in 8vo.
een altogether buried in obscurity, had it not been for Paulus Emilius of Verona, that most eloquent writer and preserver of ancient pedigrees; who having found in Bavaria
He is said to have been very nice and scrupulous in regard to his works, having always some correction to make;
hence Erasmus imputes the same fault to him that was
objected to the painter Protogenes, who thought he had
never finished his pieces; “That very learned man Paulus
Emilius (says he) gave pretty much into this fault he was
never satisfied with himself but, as often as he revised his
own performances, he made such alterations, that one
would not take them for the same pieces corrected, but for
quite different ones; and this was his usual custom. This
made him so slow, that elephants could bring forth sooner
than he could produce a work; for he took above thirty
years in writing his history.
” Lipsius was much pleased
with this performance: “Paulus Emilius (says that author)
is almost the only modern who has discovered the true and
ancient way of writing history, and followed it very closely.
His manner of writing is learned, nervous, and concise,
inclining to points and conceits, and leaving a strong impression on the mind of a serious reader. He often intermixes maxims and sentiments not inferior to those of the
ancients. A careful examiner, and impartial judge of
facts; nor have J met with an author in our time, who has
less prejudice or partiality. It is a disgrace to our age that
so few are pleased with him; and that there are but few
capable of relishing his beauties. Among so many perfections there are, however, a few blemishes, for his style
is somewhat unconnected, and his periods too short. This
is not suitable to serious subjects, especially annals, the
style of which, according to Tacitus, should be grave and
unaffected. He is also unequal, being sometimes too studied and correct, and thereby obscure; at other times
(this however but seldom) he is loose and negligent. He
affects also too much of the air of antiquity in the names
of men and places, which he changes, and would reduce to
the ancient form, often learnedly, sometimes vainly, and
in my opinion always unbecomingly.
” Emilius’s history is
divided into ten books, and extends from Pharamond to
the fifth year of Charles VIII. in 1438. The tenth book
was found among his papers in a confused condition, so
that the editor, Daniel Xavarisio, a native of Verona, and
relation of Emilius, was obliged to collate a great number
of papers full of rasures, before it could be published. He
has been censured by several of the French writers, particularly by M. Sorel: “It does not avail (says this author)
that his oratorical pieces are imitations of those of the
Greeks, and Romans: all are not in their proper places; for
he often makes barbarians to speak in a learned and eloquent manner. To give one remarkable circumstance:
though our most authentic historians declare, that Hauler,
or Hanier, the counsellor, who spoke an invective, in presence of king Lewis Hautin, against Enguerrand de Mar
rigny, came off poorly, and said many silly things; yet
Paulus Emilius, who changes even his name, calling him
Annalis, makes him speak with an affected eloquence. He
also makes this Enguerrand pronounce a defence, though
it is said he was not allowed to speak; so that what the
historian wrote on this occasion was only to exercise his
pen.
” He has been also animadverted upon for not taking
notice of the holy vial at Ilheims. “I shall not (says Claude de Verdier) pass over Paulus Emilius of Verona’s
malicious silence, who omitted mentioning many things
relating to the glory of the French nation. Nor can it be
said he was ignorant of those things, upon which none
were silent before himself; such as that oil which was sent
from heaven for anointing our monarchs; and also the
lilies. And even though he had not credited them himself, he ought to have declared the opinion of mankind.
”
Vossius, however, commends his silence in regard to these
idle tales. Julius Scaliger mentions a book containing the
history of the family of the Scaligers, as translated into
elegant Latin by Paulus Emilius; and in his letter about
the antiquity and splendour of the family, he has the following passage: “By the injury of time, the malice of
enemies, and the ignorance of writers, a great number of
memoirs relating to our family were lost; so that the name
of Scaliger would have been altogether buried in obscurity,
had it not been for Paulus Emilius of Verona, that most
eloquent writer and preserver of ancient pedigrees; who
having found in Bavaria very ancient annals of our family,
written, as himself tells us, in a coarse style, polished and
translated them into Latin. From this book my father extracted such particulars as seemed to reflect the
” greatest
honour on our family." Scaliger speaks also of it in the
first edition of his Commentary on Catullus, in 1586, and
in the second, in 1600, but in such a manner as differs
somewhat from the passage above cited. Scioppius has
severely attacked Scaliger on account of these variations:
he observes, that no mention being made of the place
where this manuscript was pretended to be found, nor the
person who possessed it, and such authors as had searched
the Bavarian libraries with the utmost care, having met
with no such annals; he therefore asserts, that whatever
the Scaligers advanced concerning this work, was all im
posture. Emilius, as to his private life, was a man of exemplary conduct and untainted reputation. He died in
1529, and was buried in the cathedral at Paris.
, bishop of Pavia in Italy, and an eminent writer, was descended from an illustrious family in Gaul, and horn
, bishop of Pavia in Italy,
and an eminent writer, was descended from an illustrious
family in Gaul, and horn in Italy about the year 473. Losing
an aunt, who had brought him up, at sixteen years of age,
he was reduced to very necessitous circumstances, but retrieved his affairs by marrying a young lady of great fortune and quality. He enjoyed for some time all the pleasures and advantages which his wealth could procure him;
but afterwards resolved upon a more strict course of life.
He entered into orders, with the consent of his lady, who
likewise betook herself to a religious life. He was ordained
deacon by Epiphanius, bishop of Pavia, with whom he
lived in the most inviolable friendship. His application to
divinity did not divert him from prosecuting, at his leisure
hours, poetry and oratory, in which he had distinguished
himself from his youth; and his writings gained him very
great reputation. Upon the death of Epiphanius, he appears to have been elected one of the deacons of the Roman
church; and in the year 603, having presented to the synod
of Rome an apology for the council there, which had absolved pope Symmachus the year before, it was ordered to
be inserted among the acts of the synod. He was advanced to the bishopric of Pavia about the year 511, and appointed to negociate an union between the eastern and western churches; for which purpose he took two journeys into
the east, the former in the year 515, with Fortunatus, bishop
of Catanaea; the latter in the year 517, with Peregrinus,
bishop of Misenum. Though he did not succeed in these
negotiations, he shewed his prudence and resolution in the
management of them. For the emperor Anastasius, having
in vain used his utmost efforts to deceive or corrupt him,
after other instances of ill treatment, ordered him to be put
on board an old ship; and, forbidding him to land in any
part of Greece, exposed him to manifest danger, yet he arrived safe in Italy; and, returning to Padua, died there,
not long after, in the year 521. His works consist of, 1.
“Epistolarum ad diversos libri IX.
” 2. “Panegyricus Theodorico regi Ostrogothorum dictus.
” 3. “Libellus apologeticus pro Synodo Palmari.
” 4. “Vita B. Epiphanii episcopi Ticinensis.
” 5. “Vita B. Antonii monachi Lirinensis
”
6. “Eucharisticon de Vita sua ad Elpidium.
” 7. “Parasnesis didascalica ad Ambrosium & Beatum.
” 8. “Proeceptum de Cellulanis Episcoporum.
” 9. “Petitorium, quo
absolutus est Gerontius.
” 10. “Benedictio Cerei Paschalis I.
” 11. “Benedictio Cerei Paschalis II.
” 12. “Dietiones sacrae VI.
” 13. “Dictiones scholastics VII.
”
14. “Controversioe X.
” 15. “Dictiones Ethicae V.
” 16.
“Poeinata, seu Carminum Liber I.
” 17. “Epigrammata,
seu Carminum Liber II.
” They" were all published by
Andrew Scottus at Tournay, 1610, 8vo; and by James
Sirrnond at Paris, 1611, 8vo, with notes, explaining the
names and titles of the persons mentioned by Ennodius,
and containing a great many observations very useful tot
illustrating the history of that age. Ennodius’s works are
likewise printed with emendations and illustrations, at the
end of the first volume of father Sirmond’s works, published at Paris in 1626[?]; and, from that edition, at Venice,
1729, folio. Dupiu observes, that there is a considerable
warmth and liveliness of imagination in the writings of Ennodius but that his style is obscure, and his manner of
reasoning far from exact.
is a Spanish writer, who among biographers is classed under different names. In
is a Spanish writer, who among
biographers is classed under different names. In Moreri,
we find him under that of Dryander, by which, perhaps,
he is most generally known; but in France he took the
name of Du Chesne, and by the Germans was called
Evck, Eycken, or Eyckman. Referring to Marchand
for a dissertation on these different names, it may suffice
here to notice that Enzinas was of a distinguished family
of Burgos, the capital of Old Castille, where he was probably born, or where at least he began his studies. He
appears afterwards to have gone into Germany, and was the
pupil of the celebrated Melancthon for some years, and thence
into the Netherlands to some relations, where he settled.
Having become a convert to the reformed religion, which
was there established, he translated the New Testament
into Spanish, and dedicated it to Charles V. It was published at Antwerp in 1543. He had met with much discouragement when he communicated this design to his
friends in Spain, and was now to suffer yet more severely
for his attempt to present his countrymen with a part of
the scriptures in their own tongue. The publication had
scarcely made its appearance, when he was thrown into
prison at Brussels, where he remained from November
1543 to Feb. I, 1545, on which day finding the doors of
his prison open, he made his escape, and went to his relations at Antwerp. About three years after, he went to England, as we learn from a letter of introduction which Melancthon gave him to archbishop Cranmer. About 1552
Melancthon gave him a similar letter to Calvin. The time
of his death is not known. He published, in 1545, “A
History of the State of the Low Countries, and of the
religion of Spain,
” in Latin, which was afterwards translated
into French, and forms part of the “Protestant TYIartyrology,
” printed in Germany. Mavchand points out a few
other writings by him, but which were not published separately. Enzinas had two brothers, James and John. Of
the former little is recorded of much consequence; but
John, who resided a considerable time at Rome, and likewise became a convert to the protestant religion, was setting out for Germany to join his brother,' when some expressions which he dropped, relative to the corruptions
and disorders of the church, occasioned his being accused
of heresy, and thrown into prison. The terrors of a dungeon, and the prospect of a cruel death, did not daunt his
noble sou), but when brought before the pope and cardinals to be examined, he refused to retract what he had
said, and boldly avowed and justified his opinions, for
which he was condemned to be burnt alive, a sentence
which was put into execution at Rome in 1545.
, an ancient Christian writer of the fourth century, was a native of Edessa, according to
, an ancient Christian
writer of the fourth century, was a native of Edessa, according to some; or, as others say, of Nisibe in Syria;
and was born under the emperor Constantine. He embraced a monastic life from his earliest years, and in a
short time was chosen superior to a considerable number of
monks. He is also said to have been ordained deacon at
Edessa, and priest at Caesarea in Cappadocia by St. Basil,
who taught him Greek; but these two last circumstances
are questionable, and it is more generally asserted that he
did nat understand Greek, and that he died a deacon. He
might have been a bishop, which promotion he averted in
a very singular manner, that reminds us of the conduct of
Ambrose on a similar occasion: Sozomen relates, that
when the people had chosen him, and sought him in order
to have him ordained to that function, he ran into the market-place and pretended to be mad, and they desisting
from their purpose, he escaped into some retired place,
where he continued till another was chosen. He wrote a
great number of books, all in the Syriac language; a great
part of which is said to have been translated in his lifetime. Photius tells us that he wrote above a thousand
orations, and that himself had seen forty-nine of his sermons: and Sozomen observes, that he composed three
hundred thousand verses, and that his works were so highly
esteemed that they were publicly read in the churches after
the scriptures. The same writer adds, that his works were
so remarkable for beauty and dignity of style, as well as
for sublimity of sentiments, that these excellences did not
disappear even in their translations: and St. Jerom assures
us, that in reading the truiislatiun of St. Ephrem’s treatise
of the Holy Ghost, he recognized all the excellence of
the original. Gregory Nyssen, in his panegyric on this
father, is very copious with regard to the merit of his writings, and his attachments to the orthodox faith. St. Ephrem
had an extreme aversion to the heresies of Sabellius, Arius,
and Apollinarius; the last of whom, as Gregory relates,
he treated in a manner which partakes too much of the
modern trick to deserve much credit. It is thus related:
Apollinarius having written two books, in which he had
collected all the arguments in defence of his own opinion,
and having entrusted them with a lady, St. Ephrem borrowed these books, under the pretence of being an Apollinarian; but before he returned them he glewed all their
leaves together. The lady seeing the outside of the books
to be the same as before, and not discovering that any
thing had been done to them, returned them to Apollinarius
to be used in a public conference he was going to have
with a catholic: but he, not being able to open his books,
was obliged to retire in disgrace. St. Ephrem was a man
of the greatest severity of morals, and so strict an observer
of chastity, that he avoided the sight of women. Sozomen
tells us, that a certain woman of dissolute character, either
on purpose to tempt him, or else being hired to it by
others, met him on purpose in a narrow passage, and
stared him full and earnestly in the face. St. Ephrem
rebuked her sharply for this, and bade her look down on
the ground. But the woman said, “Why should 1 do so,
since I am not made out of the earth, but of thee It is
more reasonable that thou shouldst look upon the ground,
from which thou hadst thy original, but that I should look
upon thee, from whom I was procreated.
” St. Ephrem,
wondering at the woman, wrote a book upon this conversation, which the most learned of the Syrians esteemed one
of the best of his performances. He was also a man of
exemplary charity, and as a late historian remarks, has
furnished us with the first outlines of a general infirmary.
Edessa having been long afflicted with a famine, he quitted
his 'cell; and applying himself to the rich men, expostulated
severely with them for suffering the poor to starve, while
they covetously kept their riches hoarded up. He read
them a religious lecture upon the subject, which affected
them so deeply, that they became regardless of their
riches: “but we do not know,
” said they, “whom to
trust with the distribution of them, since almost every
man is greedy of gain, and makes a merchandise and advantage to himself upon such occasions.
” St. Ephrern
asked them, “what they thought of him
” They replied,
that they esteemed him a man of great integrity, as he
was universally thought to be. “For your sakes, therefore,
” said he, “I will undertake this work;
” and so, receiving their money, he caused three hundred beds to be
provided and laid in the public porticoes, and took care of
those who were sick through the famine. And thus he
continued to do, till, the famine ceasing, he returned to
his cell, where he applied himself again to his studies, and
died notlongafter, in the year 378, under the emperor Valens.
Upon his death-bed he exhorted the monks who were about
him, to remember him in their prayers forbade them to
preserve his clothes as relics and ordered his body to be
interred without the least funeral pomp, or any monument
erected to him. St. Ephrem was a man of the severest
piety, but confused in his ideas, and more acquainted
with the moral law than the gospel.
, an ancient Christian writer, was born, about the year 320, at Besanduce, a village of Palestine,
, an ancient Christian writer, was born,
about the year 320, at Besanduce, a village of Palestine,
His parents are said by Cave to have been Jews; but others.
are of opinion that there is no ground for this suspicion,
since Sozomen affirms, that “from his earliest youth he
was educated under the most excellent monks, upon which,
account he continued a very considerable time in Ægypt.
”
It is certain, that, while he was a youth, he went into
Ægypt, where he fell into the conversation of the Gnostics,
who had almost engaged him in their party; but he soon
withdrew himself from them, and, returning to his country,
put himself for some time under the discipline of Hilarion,
the father of the monks of Palestine. He afterwards
founded a monastery near the village where he was born,
and presided over it. About the year 367 he was elected
bishop of Salamis, afterwards called Constantia, the metropolis of the isle of Cyprus, where he acquired great reputation by his writings and his piety. In the year 382, he
was sent lor to Rome by the imperial letters, in order to
determine the cause of Paulinus concerning the see of Antioch. In the year 3yi a contest arose between him and
John, bishop of Jerusalem. Epipbanius accused John of
holding the errors of Origen; and, going to Palestine, ordained Paulinian, brother of St. Jerom, deacon and priest,
ill a monastery which did not belong to his jurisdiction.
John immediately complained of this action of Epiphanius,
as contrary to the canons and discipline of the church, and
Epiphanius defended what he had done, in a letter to John.
This dispute irritated their minds still more, which were
already incensed upon the subject of Origen; and both of
them endeavoured to engage Theophilus of Alexandria in
their party. That prelate, who seemed at first to favour
the bishop of Jerusalem, declared at last against Origen
condemned his books in a council held in the year 399
and persecuted all the monks who were suspected of regarding his memory. These monks, retiring to Constantinople, were kindly received there by John Chrysostom;
which highly exasperated Theophilus, who, from that time,
conceived a violent hatred to Chrysostom. In the mean
time Theophilus informed Epiphanius of what he had done
against Origen, and exhorted him to do the same; upon
which Epiphanius, in the year 401, called a council in
the isle of Cyprus, procured the reading of Origen’s writings to be prohibited, and wrote to Chrysostom to do the
same. Chrysostom, not approving this proposal, Epiphanius went to Constantinople, at the persuasion of Theophilus, in order to get the decree of the council of Cyprus
executed. When he arrived there, he would not have any
conversation with Cbrysostom, but used his utmost efforts to
engage the bishops, who were then in that city, to approve
of the judgment of the council of Cyprus against Origen.
Not succeeding in this, he resolved to go the next day to
the church of the apostles, and there condemn publicly all
the books of Origen, and those who defended them; but
as he was in the church, Cbrysostom informed him, by
his deacon Serapion, that he was going to do a thing contrary to the laws of the church, and which might expose
him to danger, as it would probably raise some sedition.
This consideration stopped Epiphanius, who yet was so
inflamed against Origen, that when the empress Eudoxia
recommended to his prayers the young Theodosius, who
was dangerously ill, he answered, that “the prince her
son should not die, if she would but avoid the conversation of Dioscorides, and other defenders of Origen.
” The
empress, surprised at this presumptuous answer, sent him
word, that “if God should think proper to take away her
son, she would submit to his will that he might take him
away as he had given him but that it was not in the power
of Epiphanius to raise him from the dead, since he had
lately suffered his own archdeacon to die.
” Epiphanius’s
heat was a little abated, when he had discoursed with Ammourns and his companions, whomTheophilus had banished
for adhering to Origen’s opinions; for these monks gave
him to understand that they did hot maintain an heretical
doctrine, and that he had condemned them in too precipitate a manner. At last he resolved to return to Cyprus,
and in his farewell to Chrysostom, he said, “I hope you
will not die a bishop;
” to which the latter replied, “I
hope you will never return to your own country,
” and
both their hopes were realized, as Chrysostom was deposed
from his bishopric, and Epiphanius died at sea about the
year 403. His works were printed in Greek at Basil, 1544,
in folio, and had afterwards a Latin translation made to
them, which has frequently been reprinted. At last Petavius undertook an edition of them, together with a new
Latin translation, which he published at Paris, 1622, with
the Greek text revised and corrected by two manuscripts.
This, which is the best edition, is in two volumes folio, at
the end of which are the animadversions of Petavius, which
however, are rather dissertations upon points of criticism
and chronology, than notes to explain the text of his author. This edition was reprinted at Cologne, 1682, in 2
vols. folio.
. He took his name from this city, and always called himself Roterodamus, though, as Dr. Jortin, the writer of his life, intimates, he should rather have said Roterodamius,
, one of the most illustrious of
the revivers of learning, was born at Rotterdam, October
28, 1467. His father Gerard, who was of Tergou, in that
neighbourhood, fell in love with Margaret, the daughter
of one Peter, a physician of Sevenbergen; and after promises of marriage, as Erasmus himself suggests, connected
himself with her, though the nuptial ceremonies were not
performed. From this intercourse Gerard had a son, whom
Erasmus calls Anthony, in a letter to Lambert Grunnius,
secretary to pope Julius II. and whose death, in another letter
he tells us, he bore better than he did the death of his friend
Frobenius. About two years after, Margaret proved with
child again; and then Gerard’s father and brethren (for he was the youngest of ten children) beginning to be uneasy at this attachment, resolved to make him an ecclesiastic. Gerard, aware of this, secretly withdrew into Italy,
and went to Rome; he left, however, a letter behind him,
in which he bade his relations a final farewell; and assured
them that they should never see his face more while they
continued in those resolutions. At Rome he maintained
himself decently by transcribing ancient authors, which,
printing being not yet commonly used, was no unprofitable
employment. In the mean time, Margaret, far advanced
in her pregnancy, was conveyed to Rotterdam to lie in,
privately; and was there delivered of Erasmus. He took
his name from this city, and always called himself Roterodamus, though, as Dr. Jortin, the writer of his life, intimates, he should rather have said Roterodamius, or Roterodamensis. The city, however, was not in the least
offended at the inaccuracy, but made proper returns of
gratitude to a name by which she was so much ennobled;
and perpetuated her acknowledgments by inscriptions,
and medals, and by a statue erected and placed at first
near the principal church, but afterwards removed to a
Station on one of the bridges.
Gerard’s relations, long ignorant what was become of
him, at last discovered that he was at Rome and now resolved to attempt by stratagem what they could not effect
by solicitation and importunity. They sent him word,
therefore, that his beloved Margaret was dead; and he
lamented the supposed misfortune with such extremity of
grief, as to determine to leave the world, and become a
priest. And even when upon his return to Tergou, which
happened soon after, he found Margaret alive, he adhered
to his ecclesiastical engagements; and though he always
retained the tenderest affection for her, never more lived
with her in any other manner than what was allowable by
the laws of his profession. She also observed on her part
the strictest celibacy ever after. During the absence of
his father, Erasmus was under the care and management
of his grandmother, Gerard’s mother, Catharine. He was
called Gerard, after his father, and afterwards took the
name of Desiderius, which in Latin, and the surname of
Erasmus, which in Greek, signify much the same as Gerard
among the Hollanders, that is, “amabilis,
” or amiable.
Afterwards he was sensible that he should in grammatical
propriety have called himself Erasmius, and in fact, he
gave this name to his godson, Joannes Erasmius Frobenius.
As soon as Gerard was settled in his own country again,
he applied himself with all imaginable care to the education of Erasmus, whom he was determined to bring up to
letters, though in low repute at that time, because he discovered in him early a very uncommon capacity. There
prevails indeed a notion in Holland, that Erasmus was at
first of so heavy and sl9w an understanding, that it was
many years before they could make him learn any thing;
and this, they think, appears from a passage in the life
written by himself, where he says, that “in his first years
he made but little progress in those unpleasant studies, for
which he was not born; in literis ill is inamoenis, quibus
non natus erat.
” When he was nine years old, he was
sent to Dav enter, in Guelderland, at that time one of the
best schools in the Netherlands, and the most free from
the barbarism of the age; and here his parts very soon
shone 'out. He apprehended in an instant whatever was
taught him, and retained it so perfectly, that he infinitely
surpassed all his companions. Rhenanus tells us that Zinthius, one of the best masters in the college of Daventer,
was so well satisfied with Erasmus’s progress, and so
thoroughly convinced of his great abilities, as to have foretold
what afterwards came to pa>s, that “he would some time
prove the envy and wonder of all Germany.
” His memory
is said to have b~?en so prodigious, that he was able to repeat all Terence and Horace by heart. We must nojt
forget to observe, that pope Adrian VI. was his schoolfellow, and ever after his friend, and the encourager of his
studies.
, of Lombardy, a writer who lived in the eighth and part of the ninth century, began
, of Lombardy, a writer who lived in the eighth and part of the ninth century, began early in life to bear arms, and was made prisoner of war, but afterwards retired to Monte Cassino, where he embraced the rule of St. Benedict at the age of about twenty-five. The government of a neighbouring monastery was conferred upon him but here he was exposed to so many vexations, that he was obliged once more to retire and in his retreat wrote a Chronicle, or a History at large of the Lombards, which is thought to be lost, and an abridgment of the same history, from the year 774 to 888, which forms & sort of supplement to Paul the deacon. Anthony Caraccioli, priest of the order of regular clerks, published this abridgment, which relates some curious facts, with other pieces, at Naples, in 1620, 4to. Camillus Peregrinus inserted it afterwards in his history of the princes of Lombardy, 1643, 4to.
, a numismatical writer of considerable reputation in the sixteenth century, was of
, a numismatical writer of considerable reputation in the sixteenth century, was of a noble
family in Venice, where he was born in 1530. After a
very liberal education, he passed some time in political
employment, but at last devoted himself entirely to literary
pursuits. In the course of his various studies he published
a treatise on the money of the ancients’; an explanation of
Aristotle’s ethics; and translated into Italian the TimeUs of
Plato, and wrote some other philosophical pieces. At the
age of forty he was again employed in the affairs of the
republic, and managed what was entrusted to him with
great reputation. He died in 1585. His work on money
was esteemed so much superior to that of Eneas Vieo, who
preceded him, that he was considered in his own country
as the father of the numismatic science. It was published
tinder the title of “Discorso sopra la Medaglie degli antichi, con la dichiarazione delle Monete Consolari, e deJle
Medaglie degl' Imperatori,
” Venice, 4to, without date, but
some copies have the date of 1471. His other works were,
1. “Le Sei Giornati, mandate in luce da Ludovico Dolce,'
”
Venice,Esposizioue delle tre Canzoni di
Francesco Petrarca chiamate le tve Sorelle,
” Venice, Trattato dello strumento, e della via inventrice
degli antichi,
” ibid.
, or, as he was called in Dutch, Thomas van Erpe, a very learned writer, and eminently skilled in the oriental tongues, was descended,
, or, as he was called in Dutch, Thomas van Erpe, a very learned writer, and eminently skilled in the oriental tongues, was descended, both by his father and mother’s side, from noble families at Boisleduc in Brabant, which place his parents had quitted on account of their adherence to the protestant religion, and was born, at Gorcum in Holland, Sept. 11, 1584. Prom his earliest years he shewed a peculiar disposition for learning, which induced his father, though no scholar himself, to send him to Leyden, where he began his studies, and prosecuted them with such success, as to excite the admiration of his masters. In 1608, at the age of eighteen, he was admitted into the university of that city, where he took the degree of doctor in philosophy. Vossius informs us, that, soon after he became a student in that place, he grew so diffident of succeeding in his labours, as to have thoughts of laying them entirely aside; but that, being encouraged to persevere, and inspired with fresh courage, be made himself master of several branches of literature, and particularly metaphysics, in the pursuit of which last, his patience appears to have been invincible. He is said to have read over not only Aristotle, but likewise a great number of his interpreters, with all the commentaries of Suarez; in which he was so conversant, that, several years after he had gone through his course of philosophy, and was engaged in other studies, he could give a distinct account of the contents of almost every page of that vast work.
, a Portuguese writer, was born at Lisbon in 1614. After having early acquired a taste
, a
Portuguese writer, was born at Lisbon in 1614. After
having early acquired a taste for literature, he went and
studied the military art in Italy, and on his return to his
native country was successively governor of Penicha, and
of Tangiers, counsellor of war, gentleman of the chamber
to the infant don Pedro, and counsellor of state. In the
midst of these several employments he found time, for study
and composition. On the subject of his numerous publications, the reader may consult the “Journal Etranger
”
of The History of
Tangiers,
” The History of Portugal, from
1640 to 1657,
” in 2 vols. folio. 3. “The Life of John I.
king of Portugal.
”
, a writer on military affairs, was born at Brive-la-Gaillarde, March 25,
, a writer on military affairs, was born at
Brive-la-Gaillarde, March 25, 1713, and died at Paris, Feb.
28, 1783. He bore arms at the age of nineteen, signalized
his prowess in Italy in 1734, and was aid de-camp in the
campaigns of Bavaria in 1742. Marshal Saxe, who was
well acquainted with his military talents, employed him
either as aide-major-general of the army, or as colonel of
one of the regiments of grenadiers created in 1745. Being
appointed in 1766 governor of the hotel-des-invalides, he
not only maintained the utmost regularity, but introduced
great improvements there. He obtained the rank of lieutenant-general in 1780. Among his works are, 1. “Campagnesdu roi en 1745, 1746, 1747, et 1748,
” 4 vols. 8vo.
2. “Essai sur la science de la Guerre, 1751,
” 3 vols. 8vo.
3. “Essai sur les grandes operations de la Guerre,
” Supplement aux Reveries du
marechal de Saxe,
” Paris, Eloge de Catinat,
” and “Reflexions sur I'abbS
Suger et son siecle.
”
, a French moral writer, was boni at Beziers in loll, and entered in 1629 into the oratory,
, a French moral writer, was boni at
Beziers in loll, and entered in 1629 into the oratory,
which he quitted five years afterwards to mix again in society; in which, indeed, he -possessed all the qualities
adapted to please sense, wit, and the advantages of a
good figure. The duke de la Rochefoucault, the chancellor
Se'guier, and the prince de Conti, gave him unequivocal
testimonies of their esteem and friendship. The first introduced him into the circles of fashion the second obtained for him a pension of 2000 livres and a brevet of
counsellor of state; the third heaped his favours upon him,
and consulted him upon all occasions. Esprit died in 1678,
at the age of sixty-seven. He was a member of the French
academy, and one of those who shone in the infancy of
that society. His works are: 1. “Paraphrases on some of
the Psalms,
” which cannot be read with much pleasure
since the appearance of those of Masillon. 2. “The fallacy of Human Virtues,
” Paris, Art of knowing mankind.
”
, well known both as an actor and a writer, was born at Tewksbury, in Gloucestershire, in 1668, and received
, well known both as an actor
and a writer, was born at Tewksbury, in Gloucestershire, in
1668, and received his education at the Latin school of that
town; but, having an early inclination for the stage, he
stole away from his father’s house at fifteen years of age,
and joined a travelling company of comedians then at Worcester, where, for fear of being known, he made his first
appearance in woman’s clothes, in the part of Roxana, in
Alexander the Great. But this disguise not sufficiently
concealing him, he was obliged to make his escape from a
pursuit that was made after him; and, under the appearance
of a girl, to proceed with great expedition to Chipping Norton. Here, however, being discovered and overtaken by his
pursuers, he was brought back to Tewksbury; and his father,
in order to prevent such excursions for the future, soon after
carried him up to London, and bound him apprentice to
an apothecary in Hatton-garden. From this confinement
Mr. Chetwood, who probably might have known him, and
perhaps had these particulars from his own mouth, tells us
that he broke away, and passed two years in England in
an itinerant life; though Jacob, and Whincop after him,
say that he set up in business, but, not finding it succeed
to his liking, quitted it for the stage. Be this, however,
as it will, it is certain that he went over to Ireland, where
he met with good success on the stage, from whence he,
came back to London, and was received in Drury-lane
theatre. His first appearance there was in the part of
Dominic, the “Spanish Fryar,
” in which, although in
himself but a very middling actor, he established his character by a close imitation of Leigh, who had been very
celebrated in it. And indeed, in this and all his other parts,
he was mostly indebted for his applause to his powers
of mimicry, in which he was inimitable, and which not
only at times afforded him opportunities of appearing a
much better actor than he really was, and enabling him to
copy very exactly several performers of capital merit,
whose manner he remembered and assumed, but also by
recommending him to a very numerous acquaintance in
private life, secured him an indulgence for faults in his
public profession, that he might otherwise, perhaps, never
have been pardoned; among which he was remarkable for
the gratification of that “pitiful ambition,
” as Shakspeare
justly styles it, and for which he condemns the low comedians of his own time, of imagining he could help his author, and for that reason frequently throwing in additions
of his own, which the author not only had never intended,
but perhaps would have considered as most opposite to his
main intention.
, a celebrated wit and comic writer in the reigns of king Charles II. and king James II. is said
, a celebrated wit and comic
writer in the reigns of king Charles II. and king James II.
is said to have been descended of an ancient family in Oxfordshire, or allied to it He was born about 1636, not
very distant from London, it is believed, as some of his
nearest relations appear to have been settled not far from
this metropolis. It is thought he was partly educated at
the university of Cambridge, but travelled into France,
and perhaps Flanders also, in his younger years. At his
retu,rn, he studied for a while the municipal laws at one of
the inns of court in London; but the polite company he
kept, and his own natural talents, inclining him rather to
court the favour of the muses and cultivate the belles lettres, he produced his first dramatic performance in 1664,
entitled “The Comical Revenge; or, Love in a tub,
” which
brought him acquainted, as he himself informs us, with
Charles afterwards earl of Dorset, to whom it is dedicated.
Its fame also, with his lively humour, engaging conversation, and refined taste in the fashionable gallantries of
the town, soon established him in the societies, and rendered him the delight of those leading wits among the
quality and gentry of chief rank and distinction, who made
pleasure the chief business of their lives, and rendered
that reign the most dissolute of any in our history; such as
George Villiers duke of Bucks, John Wilmot earl of Rochester, sir Car Scroop, sir Charles Sedley, Henry Savile,
&c. Encouraged by his first success, he brought another
comedy upon the stage, in 1668, entitled “She would if
she could,
” which gained him no less applause, and it was
supposed he would now make the stage his principal pursuit, but whether from indolence, or his pleasurable engagements, there was an interval of above seven years before the appearance of his next and last dramatic production, entitled “The Man of Mode; or, Sir Fopling Flutter.
”
It is dedicated by him to the duchess of York, who then
was Mary, the daughter of the duke of Modena; in the
service of which duchess our author, as he says in his said
dedication, then was. This play still exalted his reputation, even above what both the former had done; he having therein, as perhaps he had also partly set himself some
example in the others before, shadowed forth (but somewhat disguisedly) some of his noted acquaintance and contemporaries, who were known, or thought to be so, by his
said draughts of them, to many of the audience; and this
rendered the play very popular. In the famous poem written by the lord Rochester, after the example of sir John,
Suckling’s upon the like subject, Apollo finds some plausible pretence of exception to the claim of every poetical
candidate for the laurel crown; therefore our poet, by the
scheme or drift of it, could escape no less disappointment
than the rest: yet his lordship, to do him ample justice,
has sufficiently shewed his merits to it, in every thing but
his perseverance to exert them; which, after having first
of all discarded Mr. Dryden, he next expresses thus:
we hear not of any male issue surviving. The editors of the Biographia Dramatica observe, that, as a writer, sir George Etherege was certainly born a poet, and appears
Rehearsal
” had been
hatching, by the duke of Buckingham, before it appeared:
but we meet with nothing more of our author’s writing for
the stage. There are extant some other letters of his in
prose, which were written also from Ratisbon; two of
which he sent to the duke of Buckingham when he was in
his recess. As for his other compositions, such as have
been printed, they consist, for the greatest part, of little
airy sonnets, lampoons, and panegyrics, of no great
poetical merit, although suited to the gay and careless taste
of the times. All that we have met with, of his prose, is a
short piece, entitled “An Account of the rejoycing at the
diet of Ratisbonne, performed by sir George Etherege,
knight, residing therefrom his majesty of Great Britain;
upon occasion of the birth of the prince of Wales. In a
letter from himself.
” Printed in the Savoy, Comical Revenge
” succeeded very
well upon the stage, and met with general approbation for
a considerable time, it is now justly laid aside on account
of its immorality. This is the case, likewise, with regard
to sir George’s other plays. Of the “She would if she
could,
” the critic Dennis says, that though it was esteemed by men of sense for the trueness of some of its characters, and the purity, freeness, and easy grace of its dialogue, yet, on its first appearance, it was barbarously treated by the audience. If the auditors were offended with
the licentiousness of the comedy, their barbarity did them
honour; but it is probable that, at that period, they were
influenced by some other consideration. Exclusively of
its loose tendency, the play is pronounced to be undoubtedly a very good one; and it was esteemed as one of the
first rank at the time in which it was written. However,
ShadwelPs encomium upon it will be judged to be too extravagant.
Euclid, as a writer on music, has ever been held in the highest estimation by all
Euclid, as a writer on music, has ever been held in the
highest estimation by all men of science who have treated
of harmonics, or the philosophy of sound. As Pythagoras
was allowed by the Greeks to have been the first who found
out musical ratios, by the division of a monochord, or
single string, a discovery which tradition only had preserved, Euclid was the first who wrote upon the subject,
and reduced these divisions to mathematical demonstration.
His “Introduction to Harmonics,
” which in some Mss.
was attributed to Cleonidas, is in the Vatican copy given
to Pappus; Meibomius, however, accounts for this, by
supposing those copies to have been only two different ms
editions of Euclid’s work, which had been revised, corrected, and restored from the corruptions incident to frequent transcription by Cleonidas and Pappus, whose names
were, on that account, prefixed. It first appeared in print
with a Latin version, in 1498, at Venice, under the title
of “Cleonidae Harmonicum Introductorium:
” who Cleonidas was, neither the editor, George Valla, nor any one
else pretends to know. It was John Pena, a mathematician in the service of the king of France, who first published this work at Paris, under the name of Euclid, 1557.
After this, it went through several editions with his other
works.
, a Greek writer of the fifth century, composed a book under the title of “Altercatio
, a Greek writer of the fifth century, composed a book under the title of “Altercatio Symonis Judaei
& Theophili Christiani,
” which may be seen in Martenne’s“Thesaurus Anecdotorum.
” The authors of the “Histoire
literaire de la France,
” torn. II. have shewn that the author
of this writing mentioned by Gennadius was not a Greek,
but a French priest, who had been the disciple of St. Martin. They place him accordingly in the former half of the
fifth century, and ascribe to him likewise the “Consultationes seu deliberationes Zachan Christiani & Apollonii
philosophi,
” which Luke d'Acheri has printed in his “Spicilegium,
” tom. X.
, celebrated as a philosopher, patriot, and learned writer of the seventeenth century, was descended from an ancient and
, celebrated as a philosopher, patriot, and learned writer of the seventeenth century, was descended from an ancient and honourable family, a branch of which, at the time of his birth, was settled in the county of Surrey, though it flourished originally in the county of Salop, at a place which is still called Evelyn. George Evelyn, esq. purchased the family estate at Wotton in Surrey, in the reign of queen Elizabeth, and had, by two wives, sixteen sons and eight daughters. He died May 30, 1603, in the seventy-third year of his age, leaving his estate at Wotton to Richard Evelyn, esq. his youngest and only surviving son by his second wife. This Richard Evelyn, esq. married Eleanor, or Ellen, daughter and heiress of John Stansficld, of die Cliff" near Lewes, esq. and had by her three sons, George, John, and Richard.
as well as to justify the character he had already acquired, of being at once an able and agreeable writer. It is certain that very few authors of his time deserve this
Immediately after the king’s return, Mr. Evelyn was introduced, on June 5, 1660, to the king by the duke of York, and very graciously received; nor was it long before be experienced the king’s esteem and confidence, in a remarkable instance. There had been many disputes between the ambassadors of the crowns of France and Spain, for precedence in the courts of foreign princes, and amongst these there was none more remarkable than that upon Tower-hill, on the landing of an ambassador from Sweden, September 30, 1660, which was so premeditated a business on both sides, that the king, foreseeing it would come to a quarrel, and being willing to carry himself with indifference towards both, which could not be otherwise done than leaving them at liberty to adjust their respective pretences, yet for the sake of public tranquillity, orders were given that a strict guard should be kept upon the place, and all his majesty’s subjects were enjoined not to intermeddle, or take part with either side; and the king was farther pleased to command, that Mr. Evelyn should, after diligent inquiry made, draw up and present him a distinct narrative of the whole affair, which he accordingly did, and it is a very curious and remarkable piece. It is inserted in Baker’s Chronicle, Our author began now to enter into the active scenes of life, but yet without bidding adieu entirely to his studies. On the contrary, he published, in the space of a few months, several learned treatises upon different subjects, which met with great applause; the rather because the author expressed in some of. them his intention to prosecute more largely several philosophical subjects, in a manner that might render them conducive to the benefit of society; and of his capacity for performing these promises, some of these pieces were instances sufficient to satisfy every intelligent reader, as well as to justify the character he had already acquired, of being at once an able and agreeable writer. It is certain that very few authors of his time deserve this character so well as Mr. Evelyn, who, though he was acquainted wkh most sciences, and wrote upon many different subjects, yet was tar from being a superficial writer. He had genius, taste, and learning, and he knew how to give all these a proper place in his works, so as never to pass for a pedant, even with such as were least in love with literature, and to be justly esteemed a polite author by those who knew it best.
e 8th, loth, llth, 12th, and 14th. In 1731, a translation of the whole was published by an anonymous writer, who adopted a poetical version of the first and second by Elijah
The works of Secundus have gone through several editions, of which the most copious is that of Scriverius, published at Leyden, 1631. It consists of the “Basia,
” and
of epigrams, elegies, &c. &c. A French critic who maintains that the genius of Secundus never p'roduced anything
that was not excellent in its kind, adds with too much truth,
“Mais sa muse est un peu trop lascive.
” His “Basia
”
were first translated into English by Mr. Stanley,- author
of the “Lives of the Philosophers,
” but he omitted the
8th, loth, llth, 12th, and 14th. In 1731, a translation of
the whole was published by an anonymous writer, who
adopted a poetical version of the first and second by Elijah
l‘enton, and of the I’th and iNsth by Mr. Ward. This
translation is accompanied with the original Latin, and embellished with the cuts of Secundus and Julia from the
Scriverian edition, for Secundus appears to have been
somewhat of an engraver, and the cut of his mistress Julia
is said to have been executed by him. A superior translation appeared at London in 1775, with a life of the author,
of which we have availed ourselves. Secundus excelled
his brothers in the elegance and classical purity of his
Latin poetry, as much as he fell short of them in respect
for decency.
, a writer, who distinguished himself by his talents and productions in
, a writer, who distinguished himself by his talents and productions in polite
literature, and who was many years resident in England,.
was born at St. Denis le Guast, in Lower Normandy, April
1, 1613. He was the third son of Charles de St. Denis,
castellan or baron of St. Denis le Guast; and took the
name of St. Evremond from a manor which was part of the
estate of his father, and of which he was sometimes styled
lord. He was intended, by his father, for the profession
of the law; and, when he was nine years of age, he was
sent to Paris to be bred a scholar. He was entered in the
second form in the college of Ciermont; and continued
there four years, during which he went through a course
of grammar learning and rhetoric. He was next sent to
the university of C;ien, in order to study philosophy but
he continued there one year only, and then returned to
Paris, where he pursued the same study a year longer in
the college of Harcourt. He distinguished himself not
only by his application to literature, but by other accomplishments; and he particularly excelled in fencing, so
that “St. Evremond’s pass
” was famous among those who
were skilled in that art. When he had passed through a
course of philosophy, be began to study the law: but
whether his relations had then other views for him, or that
his inclination led him to a military life, he quitted that
study after he had prosecuted it somewhat more than a
jear, and was made an ensign before he hud quite attained
to the age of sixteen. After he had served two or three
campaigns, he obtained a lieutenant’s commission; and,
after the siege of Laiidvecy, in 1637, he had the command
of a company of foot.
re them with a courage and constancy that may be envied by philosophers of the first rate.” The same writer gives the following description of his person: “M. de St. Evremond
St. Evremond was a kind of epicurean philosopher; but
though his speculative morality was too lax, yet in his general conduct he appears to have acted like a man of probity. He preserved his health and his chearfulness to a
very great age. In one of his letters to Ninon de TEnclos
he says, “At eighty-eight years of age, I eat oysters
every morning. I dine heartily, and sup tolerably. Heroes are celebrated for less merit than mine.
” He was at
length afflicted with a strangury, which was attended with
great pain, and by which he was much weakened. Bayle
tells us, in one of his letters, that it was publicly known,
that St. Evremond used no assistance of minister or priest
to prepare him for death; and that it was said, that the
envoy from the court of Florence sent to him an ecclesiastic, who, asking him whether he would be reconciled,
received for answer, “With all my heart: I would fain be
reconciled to my stomach, which no longer performs in
usual functions.
” Bayle also says, “I have seen verses,
which he wrote fifteen days before his death; and his only
regret was, that he was reduced to boiled meats, and could
no longer digest partridges and pheasants.
” He died on
the 9th of Sept. 1703, aged ninety years, five months,
and twenty days. Des Maizeaux says, “He preserved, to
the very last, a lively imagination, a solid judgment, and
a happy memory. The great and acute pains, which he
felt during his sickness, never disturbed his tranquillity.
He bore them with a courage and constancy that may be
envied by philosophers of the first rate.
” The same writer
gives the following description of his person: “M. de St.
Evremond had blue, lively, and sparkling eyes, a large
forehead, thick eye-brows, a handsome mouth, and a sneering physiognomy. Twenty years before his death, a wen
grew between his eye-brows, which in time increased to a
considerable bigness. He once designed to have it cut oft;
but, as it was no ways troublesome to him, and he little
regarded that kind of deformity, Dr. Le Fevre advised him
to let it alone, lest such an operation should be attended
with dangerous symptoms in a man of his age. He would
often make merry with himself on account of his wen, his
great leather cap, and grey hair, which he chose to wear
rather than a periwig .
” Des Maizeaux afterwards adds,
“His behaviour was civil and engaging, his conversation
lively and pleasant, his repartees quick and happy. We
find very few that know how to read well. M. de St. Evre-p
mond told me one day, that he had not known three in
his whole life that could read justly. He had this art in
perfection; and, what is altogether as uncommon, he had
a very happy way of telling a story.
” “His humour was
ever gay and merry; which was so far from declining towards the latter end of his life, that it seemed rather to
gather fresh strength.
” “He was extremely fond of the
company of young people, and delighted to hear the stories
of their adventures.
” “Although he did not pretend to
over-rigid morals, yet he had all the qualities of a man of
honour. He was just, generous, and grateful; and full of
goodness and humanity.
”
e, it appears that, although a man of learning as well as probity, he was a better magistrate than a writer.
, president of the parliament of
Grenoble, was born Dec. 22, 1561, at Voiron in Dauphiny.
His father Claude Expilli had acquired great reputation in
the army. This his son studied first at Turin, and in 1581
and 1582 went through a course of law studies at Padua,
where he became acquainted with many of the most learned
men of his time, particularly Speroni, Torniel, Decianus,
I'ancirollus, Pinelli, Zabarella, Picolomini, &c. On his
return to France, he took his doctor’s degree at Bourges,
where the celebrated James Cujas bestowed high praise on.
him. He then settled at Grenoble, and acquired such distinction among the advocates of the parliament, that the
king Henry IV. considered him as fit for the highest offices
in law. Expilli was accordingly promoted to that of king’s
procurator in the chamber of finances, king’s advocate in
parliament, and lastly that of president. The same monarch, as well as Louis XIII. employed him in many important affairs in thecomte Venaissin, Piedmont, and Savoy,
where he was first president of the parliament of Chamberi, after that city was taken in 1C 30. Three years after,
the king made use of his services at Piguerol; but on his
return to Grenoble, he died July 22 or 23, 1636, in the
seventy- fifth year of his age. James Philip Thomasini,
bishop of Citta Nova, wrote his eloge, and his life was
written by Antony Boniel de Catilhon, his nephew, and
advocate general of the chamber of accounts in Dauphiny.
It was printed at Grenoble in 1660, 4to. Cherier, in his
History of that province, says of him, that his works are an
incontestable proof of his learning, which was by no means
confined. He. was an orator, lawyer, historian, and poet,
a man of excellent private character, and a liberal patron
of merit, which alone was a sure introduction to his favour.
His works are both in prose and verse. His “Pleadings
” were printed at Paris, French orthography,
” Lyons,
, a French writer, and canontreasurer of the chapter of St. Marine at Tarascon,
, a French writer, and canontreasurer of the chapter of St. Marine at Tarascon, was
born at St, llemy in Provence, of an obscure family, in
1719. He was educated for the church, but his course of
studies was general, and he early manifested a taste for
voyages and works of geography, and expended all he was
worth in gratifying this inclination, by travelling over part
of Europe and the coasts of Africa to verify the relative
situations of places, and correct the errors of former geographers. On his return, he employed himself in arranging and methodizing the observations and information he
had collected on the climate, manners, population, and 1
political interests of the different countries he had visited.
These labours appeared so meritorious, that he was elected
a member of the academies of Madrid, Stockholm, and
Berlin. He died about the commencement of the French
revolution, after having passed his life in successful study,
and established an excellent character for benevolence.
He published, as the result of his travels, 1. “Cosrnographie,
” Delia casa Milano,
” Polychorographie,
” Avignon, Topographic de
TUnivers,
” Description de l‘Angleterre, de l’Ecosse, et de Irelande,
” De la population de la
France,
” Dictionnaire geographique des Gaules et de la France,
” Manuel
geographe,
”
, a physician and medical writer, was born at Erfurt in 1652, and first educated in the college
, a physician
and medical writer, was born at Erfurt in 1652, and first
educated in the college of that place, and afterwards studied
medicine both there and at Jena. He took his doctor’s
degree at Erfurt in 1680, and removing soon after into
Westphalia, was made physician to the city of Bockem;
but on the plague disappearing, which had broke out
there, he returned in 1685 to Erfurt, and two years after
was appointed professor extraordinary of medicine. In
1693 he was promoted to be professor in ordinary, and
obtained at the same time a place in the faculty. In 1694
he exchanged his professorship of pathology for that of
anatomy and surgery, to which botany was afterwards
united. In 1713 he was presented with the degree of
master of arts, and in 1715 admitted a member of the
academy of the “Curieux de la Nature.
” He died June
80,1717, leaving the following works: 1. “Enchyridion
de formulis prescribendis, secundum method um Gaspari
Crameri,
” Erfurc, Compendium Anatomicum,
” ibid. Compendium
Physiologicum,
” ibid. Compendium Chirurgicurn,
” ibid.
me in which he lived. Eusebius introduces a Demetrius as quoting him; and if that was (as an eminent writer of the present day supposes) Demetrius Phalereus, he must have
, a Jew, was a Greek poet, who wrote tragedies on subjects of the sacred history. Large fragments of a tragedy by him, on the departure of Israel from Egypt, have been preserved by Clemens of Alexandria, and Eusebius. Various opinions are held concerning the time in which he lived. Eusebius introduces a Demetrius as quoting him; and if that was (as an eminent writer of the present day supposes) Demetrius Phalereus, he must have lived near 300 years before the birth of our Saviour. Others bring him down to a century after that period. He must, at all events, have been prior to Clemens, who quotes him; and certain it is, that there are some remarkable expressions concerning the divine Logos in his fragments. 3
, a Roman historian, the first prose writer on the subject of Roman history, was the son of C. Fabius Pictor,
, a Roman historian, the first prose writer on the subject of Roman history, was the son of C. Fabius Pictor, who was consul with Ogulnius Callus in the year 271 B. C. and grandson of the Fabius who painted the temple of health, from whom this branch of the family obtained the name of Pictor. He was nearly related to the preceding Fabius, and after the battle of Cannae was sent to the Delphic oracle to inquire by what supplications the gods might be appeased. He wrote the history of this war with Hannibal, and is cited by Livy as authority in it. The fragments of his annals that remain in the works of the ancients, whether in Greek or Latin, for he wrote in both, relate chiefly to the antiquities of Italy, the beginnings of Rome, or the acts of the Romans. He is censured by Polybius, as too partial to the Romans, and not even just to the Carthaginians. His style was doubtless that of his age, unformed, and imperfect. An history, circulated as his, consisting of two books, one on the golden age, the other on the origin of Rome, is now known to have been a forgery of Annius of Viterbo,
ctor. He performed on the stages of Versailles, Brussels, and Lyons, but with no great success. As a writer for the stage, however, he was allowed considerable merit, and
,
one of the agents in the French revolution, was born at
Carcassane, Dec. 28, 1755, and was educated in polite
literature and natural philosophy by his parents, whom he
quitted in his youth, and became by turns a painter, musician, engraver, poet, and actor. He performed on the
stages of Versailles, Brussels, and Lyons, but with no
great success. As a writer for the stage, however, he was
allowed considerable merit, and obtained, on one occasion,
at the Floral ia, the prize of the Eglantine, the name of
which he added to his own. In 1786 he published in a
French periodical work, “Les Etrennes du Parnasse,
” a
little poem called “Chalons sur Marne,
” in which he
drew a very charming picture of the moral pleasures that
were to be found in that place and its neighbourhood.
This piece, however, fell very short of the celebrity to
which he afterwards attained. In 1789 and 1790 he published two comedies, “Le Philinte,
” and “L'Intrigue
Epistolaire,
” the former of which was reckoned one of the
best French pieces of the last century.
, a voluminous French writer, or rather compiler, was born April 25, 1668, at Paris, the
, a voluminous French writer,
or rather compiler, was born April 25, 1668, at Paris, the
son of an eminent surgeon. He was subdeacon, and bachelor of the Sorbonne, and had been second teacher at
St. Quintin, when he entered the congregation of the oratory at Paris. He rose to be successively professor of philosophy at Itumilly in Savoy, at Toulon, Riom, Mans, and
Nantes; afterwards taught theology three years at Riom,
and during three more at the seminary of the congregation at Lyons. While he lived in the last named city, he
published a small dictionary, Latin and French, 8vo, compiled from the best classical authors, which has passed
through several editions; and he also published at Lyons,
in 1709, a new edition of Richelet’s dictionary, 2 vols. folio,
under the title of Amsterdam, which edition was suppressed
on account of several theological articles respecting the
affairs of the times; and because in his list of authors, he
bestowed great encomiums on Messrs, of Port Royal, but
none on their adversaries. This obliged him to quit the
oratory, and retire to Clermont in Auvergne, where, being
destitute of a maintenance, he undertook the education of
some children, and had recourse to father Tellier, a Jesuit,
the king’s confessor, who twice supplied him with money.
In the latter end of 171 Fabre again entered the congregation of the oratory, and was sent to Douay, where he
wrote a small pamphlet, entitled “Entretigns de Christine^
et de Pelagie, sur la lecture de PEcriture-Sainte
” which
is still in request. Having afterwards preached the Sunday sermons of the oratory of Tragany with great credit (for he had also talents for preaching), he went to reside at
Montmorency, towards the end of 1723, and there began
his “Continuation de l'Histoire Ecclesiastique, de feu M.
TAbbe Fleury;
” and published 16 vols. 4to or 12mb, which
induced his superiors to invite him again to their houses,
Rue St. Honore*, at Paris, where he died, October 22, 1755,
aged eighty-five, much lamented by his brethren and
friends, for his mildness, candour, modesty, and virtue.
The discourse “Sur le renouvellement des etudes ecclesiastiques,
” &c. at the beginning of the thirteenth volume
of the Continuation, is by the abbe Goujet. This Continuation discovers great learning, and facility in writing,
but has neither the wit, penetration, character, style, nor
accuracy of judgment possessed by the abbe Fleury. Fabre
would have carried it on much farther, but was forbidden
to print any new volumes. He made the index to M, de
Thou’s history translated into French, 4to, and had begun
one to the “Journal des Sgavans,
” but soon gave up his
undertaking to the abbe* de Claustre, to whom the public
owes that useful work, 10 vols. 4to. Fabre also left a moderate translation of Virgil, 4 vols. 12mo, and a translation
of the Fables of Phaedrus, Paris, 1728, 12mo, with notes.
mata thirteen lives; six prations, and thirty-eight prefaces, all from the pen of this indefatigable writer: he left also a considerable number of unfinished manuscripts.
Besides these, Reimar gives a list of fifteen works to which he contributed additions and dissertations; thirteen original dissertations, or academical theses, published from 1688 to 1695; sixteen programmata thirteen lives; six prations, and thirty-eight prefaces, all from the pen of this indefatigable writer: he left also a considerable number of unfinished manuscripts.
ecclesiastics of their temporal possessions. Bale’s assertion, however, is unsupported by any other writer. The second edition was printed by Rastell in 1533; the third
There have been five editions of Fabyan; the first printed
by Pynson, in 1516, the great rarity of which is attributed
by Bale to cardinal Wolsey, who ordered some copies
“exemplaria nonnulla
” to be burnt, because the author
had made too clear a discovery of the revenues of the
clergy. This obnoxious part, Mr. Ellis thinks, was the abstract of the bill projected by the house of commons in the
eleventh year of Henry IV. for depriving ecclesiastics of
their temporal possessions. Bale’s assertion, however, is
unsupported by any other writer. The second edition was
printed by Rastell in 1533; the third by John Reynes in
1542; the fourth by Kingston in 1559, all in folio; and
the fifth makes part of the series of Chronicles lately reprinted by a society of the most eminent booksellers of
London, and was edited by Henry Ellis, esq. F. R. S. and
F. S. A. with such collations and improvements as give it a
very superior value. It is reprinted from Pynson’s edition
of 1516, the first part collated with the editions of 1533,
1542, and 1559, and the second with a manuscript of the
author’s own time, as well as the subsequent editions including the different continuations.
, a French comic writer of some eminence within the last century, was born at Paris
, a French comic
writer of some eminence within the last century, was born
at Paris in 1702. He was son of a clerk in a public office
at Paris, in which he also obtained an appointment that
gave him little trouble, and left him leisure for literary
occupations. He wrote for several of the French theatres,
and his works were collected into four volumes, 12mo,1760.
The general character of his comedies is a delicate and
natural liveliness. The most approved of them were, “The
Rendezvous,
” and “The Ward.
” In his own character,
as well as in talents, he was not unlike la Fontaine, indolent, averse to business, negligent of his appearance, absent, timid, and by no means likely to be taken by a
stranger for a man of genius. He died April 28, 1755, at
the age of fifty-three.
, a French topographical writer, was born at Castelnaudari in Upper Languedoc, Oct. 30, 1616.
, a French topographical
writer, was born at Castelnaudari in Upper Languedoc,
Oct. 30, 1616. after going through a course of studies at
Toulouse, he was in 1638 appointed king’s advocate to
the presidial of his native city, which office he resigned in
1655 on being chosen syndic to the city of Toulouse, and
came to reside in the latter, where he was enabled to cultivate his taste for the belles lettres; and during the discharge of the duties of his office, which he executed with
zeal and disinterestedness, the opportunity he had of inspecting the archives suggested to him the design of writing
the annals of Toulouse. On making known his intentions,
the parliament granted him permission to examine its registers, and the city undertook to defray the expense of
printing his work. Having been advanced to the rank of
capitoul, or alderman of the city, which office he served
for the third time in 1673, he communicated to his brethren
a plan of ornamenting their capitolium, or town -hall, with
busts of the most distinguished personages who had filled
the offices of magistracy, and they having allowed him to
make choice of the proper objects, a gallery was completed
in 1677 with the busts of thirty persons whom he had selected as meriting that honour. This, and other services
which he rendered to the citizens of Toulouse, induced
them to confer a handsome pension on him, and likewise
to bestow the reversion of the place of syndic on his nephew, who dying before La Faille, they gave it to his
grand-nephew. In 1694 the academy of the “Jeux Floraux
” elected him their secretary, a situation which he
filled for sixteen years with much reputation; for, besides
the fame he had acquired as an historian and magistrate,
he possessed considerable literary taste and talents, and
even in his ninetieth year produced some poetical pieces
in which there was more spirit and vivacity than could
have been expected at that very advanced period. He
died at Toulouse Nov. 12, 1711, in his ninety-sixth year.
His “Annales de la ville de Toulouse
” were published
there in 2 vols. fol. 1687 and 1701. The style, although;
somewhat incorrect, is lively and concise. The annals are
brought down only to 1610, the author being afraid, if he
proceeded nearer to his own times, that he might be
tempted to violate the impartiality which he had hitherto
endeavoured to preserve. He published also “Traité de
la noblesse des Capitouls,
” Journal de Verdun,
” for May
of Bologne. “The truth is,” says the author of Cibber’s Lives, “this gentleman is, perhaps, the only writer down to sir William Davenant, who needs no apology to be made
Such are the few particulars that are related concerning
the private life of Fairfax. But it is as a poet that he is
principally entitled to attention; and in this respect he is
held in jqst reputation, and deserves to have his name
transmitted with honour to posterity. His principal work
was his translation of Tasso’s heroic poem of “Godfrey of
Bologne
” out of Italian into English verse; and what adds
to the merit of the work is, that it was his first essay in
poetry, and executed when he was very young. On its
appearance, it was dedicated to queen Elizabeth. The
book was highly commended by the best judges and wits
of the age in which it was written, and their judgment has
been sanctioned by the approbation of succeeding critics.
King James valued it above all other English poetry; and
king Charles used to divert himself with reading it in the time
of his confinement. All who mention Fairfax, do him the
justice to allow that he was an accomplished genius. Dryden introduces Spenser and Fairfax almost on the level, as
the leading authors of their times, and Waller confessed
that he owed the music of his numbers to Fairfax’s Godfrey
of Bologne. “The truth is,
” says the author of Cibber’s
Lives, “this gentleman is, perhaps, the only writer down
to sir William Davenant, who needs no apology to be made
for him on account of the age in which he lived. His diction is so pure, elegant, and full of graces, and the turn of
his lines so perfectly melodious, that one cannot read it
without rapture; and we can scarcely imagine the original
Italian has greatly the advantage in either: nor is it very
probable, that while Fairfax can be read, any author will
attempt a new translation of Tasso with success.
” Without disputing the general truth of this eulogium (which, however, might somewhat have been softened), it cannot
fail to be observed, how much the biographer has been
mistaken in his concluding conjecture. A new translation
of Tasso has not only been attempted, but executed, by
Mr. Hoole, with remarkable success and with distinguished
excellence; and indeed in such a manner, that in the opinion of Dr. Johnson, Fairfax’s work will perhaps not soon
be reprinted. Of Fairfax, it has been justly said that he
had the powers of genius and fancy, and broke through
that servile custom of translation which prevailed in his
time. His liberal elegance rendered his versions more
agreeable than the dry ness of Jonson, and the dull fidelity
of Sandys and May; and he would have translated Tasso
with success, had he not unhappily chosen a species of versification which was ill adapted to the English language.
Mr. Hoole, in assigning the reasons for his giving a new
version of Tasso’s “Jerusalem Delivered,
” remarks that
Fairfax’s stanzas cannot be read with pleasure by the generality of those who have a taste for English poetry: of which
no other proof is necessary than that it appears scarcely to
have been read at all. It is not only unpleasant, but irksome, in such a degree as to surmount curiosity, and more
than counterbalance all the beauty of expression and sentiment, which is to be found in that work. He does not,
however, flatter himself that he has excelled Fairfax, except in measure and versification; and, even of these, the
principal recommendation is, that they are more modern, and
better adapted to the ear of all readers of English poetry,
except of the very few vtho have acquired a taste for the
phrases and cadencies of those times, when our verse, if
not our language, was in its rudiments.“The author of iris
life in the Biog. Britannica, however, is of opinion that it
was not necessary to the justification of Mr. Hoole’s new
version, that he should pass so severe a censure on Fairfax’s measure. To say that
” it is not only unpleasant, but
irksome, in such a degree as to surmount curiosity, and
more than counterbalance all the beauty of expression
which is to be found in the work,“appears to be very unjust The perspicuity and harmony of Fairfax’s ver>ification are indeed extraordinary, considering the time in
which he wrote; and in this respect he ranks nearly with
Spenser. Nothing but a fine fancy and an elegant mind
could have enabled him, in that period, to have made such
advances towards perfection. Hume seems to be nearly
of the same opinion.
” Fairfax,“says that historian,
” has
translated Tasso with an elegance and ease, and at the
same time with an exactness, which for that age are surprising. Each line in the original-is faithfully rendered by
a correspondent line in the translation. Harrington’s translation of Ariosto is not likewise without its merit. It is to
be regretted, that these poets should have imitated the
Italians in their stanza, which has a prolixity and uniformity in it that displeases in long performances. They had
otherwise, as well as Spenser, contributed much to the polishing and refining of English versification.
sion of them, Cromwell, and his son-in-law Ireton, as good a contriver as himself, but a much better writer and speaker, devised how to raise a mutiny in the army against
Hitherto, the crafty and ambitious Cromwell had permitted him to enjoy in all respects the supreme command,
at least to outward appearance. And, under his conduct,
the army’s rapid success, after their new model, had much
surpassed the expectation of the most sanguine of their
masters, the parliament* The question now was, to disband the majority of them after their work was done, and
to employ a part of the rest in the reduction of Ireland.
But either of the two appeared to all of them intolerable.
For, many having, from the dregs of the people, risen to
the highest commands, and by plunderings and violence
amassing daily great treasures, they could not bear the
thoughts of losing such great advantages. To maintain
themselves therefore in the possession of them, Cromwell,
and his son-in-law Ireton, as good a contriver as himself,
but a much better writer and speaker, devised how to raise
a mutiny in the army against the parliament. To this end
they spread a whisper among the soldiery, “that the parliament, now they had the king, intended to disband
them; to cheat them of their arrears; and to send them,
into Ireland, to be destroyed by the Irish.
” The army,
enraged at this, were taught by Ireton to erect a council
among themselves, of two soldiers out of every troop and
every company, to consult for the good of the army, and
to assist at the council of war, and advise for the peace and
safety of the kingdom. These, who were called adjutators,
or agitators, were wholly under Cromwell’s influence and
direction, the most active of them being his avowed creatures. Sir Thomas saw with uneasiness his power on the
army usurped by these agitators, the forerunners of confusion and anarchy, whose design (as he observes) was to
raise their own fortunes upon the public ruin; and that
made him resolve to lay down his commission. But he
was over-persuaded by the heads of the Independent faction to hold it till he had accomplished their desperate
projects, of rendering themselves masters not only of the
parliament, but of the whole kingdom; for, he joined in
the several petitions and proceedings of the army that
tended to destroy the parliament’s power. About the beginning of June, he advanced towards London, to awe the
parliament, though both houses desired his army might not
come within fifteen miles of the same; June 15, he was a
party in the charge against eleven of the members of the
house of commons; in August, he espoused the speakers
of both houses, and the sixty -six members that had fled to
the army, and betrayed the privileges of parliament: and,
entering London, August 6, restored them in a kind of
triumph; for which he received the thanks of both
houses, and was appointed constable of the Tower. On
the other hand it is said that he was no way concerned in,
the violent removal of the king from Holmby, by cornet
Joyce, on the 3d of June; and waited with great respect
upon his majesty at sir John Cutts’s house near Cambridge.
Being ordered, on the 15th of the same month, by the
parliament, to deliver the person of the king to such persons as both houses should appoint; that he might be brought
to Richmond, where propositions were to be presented to
him for a safe and well-grounded peace; instead of complying (though he seemed to do so) he carried his majesty
from place to place, according to the several motions of
the army, outwardly expressing, upon most occasions, a
due respect for him, but, not having the will or resolution
to oppose what he had not power enough to prevent, he
resigned himself entirely to Cromwell. It was this undoubtedly that made him concur, Jan. 9, 1647-8, in that
infamous declaration of the army, of “No further addresses or application to the king; and resolved to stand by
the parliament, in what should be further necessary for
settling and securing the parliament and kingdom, without
the king and against him.
” His father dying at York,
March 13, he became possessed of his title and estate
and was appointed keeper of Pontefract-castle, custos
rotulorum of Yorkshire, &c. in his room. But his father’s
death made no alteration in his conduct, he remaining
the same servile or deluded tool to Cromwell’s ambition.
He not only sent extraordinary supplies, and took all
pains imaginable for reducing colonel Poyer in Wales, but
also quelled, with the utmost zeal and industry, an insurrection of apprentices and others in London, April 9, who
had declared for God and king Charles. The 1st of the
same month he removed his head-quarters to St. EdmundV
bury; and, upon the royalists seizing Berwick and Carlisle,
and the apprehension of the Scots entering England, he
was desired, May 9, by the parliament, to advance in person into the North, to reduce those places, and to prevent
any danger from the threatened invasion. Accordingly
he began to march that way the 20th. But he was soon
recalled to quell an insurrection in Kent, headed by George
Goring, earl of Norwich, and sir William Waller. Advancing therefore against them from London in the latter
end of May, he defeated a considerable party of them at
Maidstone, June 2, with his usual valour. But the earl
and about 500 of the royalists, getting over the Thames at
Greenwich into Essex, June 3, they were joined by several
parties brought by sir Charles Lucas, and Arthur lord
Capel, which made up their numbers about 400; and went
and shut themselves up in Colchester on the 12th of June.
Lord Fairfax, informed of their motions, passed over with
his forces at Gravesend with so much expedition, that he
arrived before Colchester June 13. Immediately he summons the royalists to surrender; which they refusing, he
attacks them the same afternoon with the utmost fury,
but, being repulsed, he resolved, June 14, to block up
the place in order to starve the royalists into a compliance.
These endured a severe and tedious siege of eleven weeks,
not surrendering till August 28, and feeding for about five
weeks chiefly on horse-flesh; all their endeavours for obtaining peace on honourable terms being ineffectual. This
affair is the most exceptionable part in lord Fairfax’s
conduct, if it admits of degrees, for he granted worse
terms to that poor town than to any other in the whole
course of the war he endeavoured to destroy it as much
as possible he laid an exorbitant fine, or ransom, of
J2,000l. upon the inhabitants, to excuse them from being
plundered; and he vented his revenge and fury upon sir
Charles Lucas and sir George Lisle, who had behaved in
the most inoffensive manner during the siege, sparing that
buffoon the earl of Norwich, whose behaviour had been
quite different: so that his name and memory there ought
to be for ever detestable. After these mighty exploits
against a poor and unfortified town, he made a kind of
triumphant progress to Ipswich, Yarmouth, Norwich, St.
Edmund’s-bui y, Harwich, Mersey, and Maldon. About
the beginning of December he came to London, to awe
thatcity and the parliament, and to forward the proceedings against the king quartering himself in the royal
palace of Whitehall: and it was by especial order from
him and the council of the army, that several members of
the house of commons were secluded and imprisoned, the
6th and 7th of that month; he being, as Wood expresses
it, lulled in a kind of stupidity. Yet, although his name
stood foremost in the list of the king’s judges, he refused
to act, probably by his lady’s persuasion. Feb. 14, 1648-9,
he was voted to be one of the new council of state, but
on the 19th he refused to subscribe the test, appointed
by parliament, for approving all that was done concerning
the king and kingship. March 31 he was voted general
of all the forces in England and Ireland; and in May he
inarched against the levellers, who were grown very numerous, and began to be troublesome and formidable in
Oxfordshire, and utterly routed them atBurford. Thence,
on the 22d of the same month, he repaired to Oxford with
Oliver Cromwell, and other officers, where he was highly
feasted, and created LL.D. Next, upon apprehension of
the like risings in other places, he went and viewed the
castles and fortifications in the Isle of Wight, and at Southampton, and Portsmouth; and near Guildford had a rendezvous of the army, which he exhorted to obedience.
June 4, he was entertained, with other officers, &c. by the
city of London, and presented with a large and weighty
bason and ewer of beaten gold. In June 1650, upon the
Scots declaring for king Charles II. the juncto of the
council of state having taken a resolution to be beforehand,
and not to stay to be invaded from Scotland, but to carry
first the war into that kingdom; general Fairfax, being
consulted, seemed to approve of the design: but afterwards,
by the persuasions of his lady, and of the presbyterian
ministers, he declared himself unsatisfied that there was a
just ground for the parliament of England to send their
army to invade Scotland and resolved to lay down his
commission rather than engage in that affair and on the
26th that high trust was immediately committed to Oliver
Cromwell, who was glad to see him removed, as being no
longer necessary, but rather an obstacle to his farther ambitious designs. Being thus released from all public employment, he went and lived quietly at his own house in
Nun-Appleton in Yorkshire; always earnestly wishing and
praying (as we are assured) for the restitution of the royal
family, and fully resolved to lay hold on the first opportunity to contribute his part towards it, which made him
always looked upon with a jealous eye by the usurpers of
that time. As soon as he was invited by general Monk to
assist him against Lambert’s army, he cheerfully embraced
the occasion, and appeared, on the 3d of December 1659,
at the head of a body of gentlemen of Yorkshire and,
upon the reputation and authority of his name, the Irish
brigade of 1200 horse forsook Lambert’s army, and joined
him. The consequence was, the immediate breaking of
all Lambert’s forces, which gave general Monk an easy
inarch into England. The 1st of January 1659-60, his
lordship made himself master of York; and, on the 2d of
the same month, was chosen by the rump parliament one
of the council of state, as he was again on the 23d of February ensuing. March '29 he was elected one of the
knights for the county of York, in the healing parliament;
and was at the head of the committee appointed May 3,
by the house of commons, to go and attend king Charles
II. at the Hague, to desire him to make a speedy return
to his parliament, and to the exercise of his kingly office.
May 16 he waited upon his majesty with the rest, and
endeavoured to atone in some measure for all past offences,
by readily concurring and assisting in his restoration. After
the dissolution of the short healing parliament, he retired
again to his seat in the country, where he lived in a private
manner till his death, which happened November 12, 1671,
in the sixtieth year of his age. Several letters,
remonstrances, and other papers, subscribed with his name, are
preserved in Rushworth and other collections, being published during the time he was general; but he disowned
most of them. After his decease, some “short memorials,
written by himself,
” were published in 1699, 8vo, by
Brian Fairfax, esq. but do his lordship no great honour,
either as to principle, style, or accuracy. Lord Fairfax,
as to his person, was tall, but not above the just proportion,
and of a gloomy and melancholy disposition. He stammered a little, and was a bad orator ou the most plausible
occasions. As to the qualities of his mind, he was of a
good natural disposition; a great lover of learning, having
contributed to the edition of the Polygiott, and other large
works; and a particular admirer of the History and Antiquities of Great Britain, as appears by the encouragement
he gave to Mr. Dodsvrorth. In religion he professed Presbyterianismn, but where he first learned that, unless ia
the army, does not appear. He was of a meek and humble
carriage, and but of few words in discourse and council;
yet, when his judgment and reason were satisfied, he was
unalterable; and often ordered things expressly contrary
to the judgment of all his council. His valour was unquestionable. He was daring, and regardless of self-interest, and, we are told, in the field he appeared so highly
transported, that scarcely any durst speak a word to him,
and he would seem like a man distracted and furious. Had
not the more successful ambition and progress of Cromwell
eclipsed lord Fairfax’s exploits, he would have been considered as the greatest of the parliamentary commanders;
and one of the greatest heroes of the rebellion, had not
the extreme narrowness of his genius, in every thing but
war, obstructed his shining as a statesman. We have already noticed that he had some taste for literature, and
that both at York and at Oxford he endeavoured to
preserve the libraries from being pillaged. He also presented
twenty-nine ancient Mss. to the Bodleian library, one of
which is a beautiful ms. of -Cower' s “Confessio Amantis.
”
When at Oxford we do not find that he countenanced any
of the outrages committed there, but on the contrary,
exerted his utmost diligence in preserving the Bodleian
from pillage; and, in fact, as Mr. Warton observes, that
valuable repository suffered less than when the city was in'
the possession of the royalists. Lord Orford has introduced lord Fairfax among his “Royal and Noble Authors,
”
“not only as an historian, but a poet. In Mr. Thoresby’s museum were preserved in manuscript the following
pieces:
” The Psalms of David;“”The Song of Solomon“” The Canticles;“and
” Songs of Moses, Exod.
15. and Deut. 32.“and other parts of scripture versified.
” Poem on Solitude.“Besides which, in the same collection were preserved
” Notes of Sermons by his lordship, by his lady, and by their daughter Mary,“the wife
of the second duke of Buckingham; and
” A Treatise on
the Shortness of Life.“But, of all lord Fairfax’s works,
by far the most remarkable were some verses which he
wrote on the horse on which Charles the Second rode to
liis coronation, and which had been bred and presented to
the king by his lordship. How must that merry monarch,
not apt to keep his countenance on more serious occasions,
have smiled at this awkward homage from the old victorious
hero of republicanism and the covenant
” Besides these,
several of his Mss. are preserved in the library at Denton,
of which Mr. Park has given a list in his new edition of the
“Royal and Noble Authors.
”
hey contain, might, if they were published, prove an acceptable present to the public. The excellent writer of them was no less distinguished for her strength of mind and
These memoirs, from the variety of interesting matter
they contain, might, if they were published, prove an acceptable present to the public. The excellent writer of
them was no less distinguished for her strength of mind and
courage than for her piety and virtue. When the vessel
that carried her from Ireland to Spain was attacked, she put
on men’s clothes, and fought with the sailors. In the second volume of Mr. Seward’s “Anecdotes
” are many other
curious extracts from lady Fanshawe’s Memoirs.
erformance, and a defence of himself; but the accusation continued to be repeated, particularly by a writer in th? London Magazine.
Mr. Farmer’s first appearance as an author was in a discourse on the suppression of the rebellion of 1745. It was
preached on the day of public thanksgiving appointed upon
that occasion in 1746, and printed in the same year. This
was the only sermon that we recollect his having ever committed to the press. His abilities, though they might have
been usefully displayed in that way, led him to those novel
opinions on which his temporary fame was founded. Iiv
1761, he published “An Inquiry into the nature and design of Christ’s Temptation in the Wilderness
” the general intention of which is to show, that this part of the evangelical history is not only to be understood as a recital of
visionary representations, but that the whole was a divine
vision, premonitory of the labours and offices of our Lord’s
future ministry. An interpretation so new and singular,
could not pass unnoticed. In 1762 there appeared a
pamphlet against the Inquiry, entitled “Christ’s Temptations, real facts: or, a Defence of the Evangelic History;
shewing that our Lord’s temptations may be fairly and reasonably understood as a narrative of what was really transacted.
” A second edition of Mr. Farmer’s treatise was
soon called for; in which the subject received additional
illustration from a considerable number of new notes. Besides this, he published in 1764, an appendix to the “Inquiry,
” containing some farther observations on the point
in debate, and an answer to objections. Another tract, the
publication of which was occasioned by the “Inquiry,
” was
entitled “The Sovereignty of the Divine Administration
vindicated, or a rational Account of our blessed Saviour’s
remarkable Temptation in the Wilderness; the Possessed
at Capernaum, the Demoniacs at Gadara, and the Destruction of the Swine: with free Remarks on several other important passages in the New Testament.
” This was a posthumous piece, which had been written before Mr. Farmer’s
work appeared, by Mr. Dixon, who had been a dissenting
minister, first at Norwich, and afterwards at Bolton in
Lancashire. Mr. Dixon proposes a figurative or allegorical interpretation of our Lord’s temptation. A third edition, with large additions, of Mr. Farmer’s “Inquiry
” was
published in A Dissertation on Miracles, designed to shew that they are arguments
of a divine interposition, and absolute proofs of the mission
and doctrine of a Prophet,
” 8vo. Not long -after the appearance of the “Dissertation,
” a notion was propagated,
that Mr. Farmer had made considerable use of a treatise of
Le Moine l s on the same subject, without acknowledging it;
and it was asserted, that his book had the very same view
with Mr. Le Moine’s, and was a copy of his work.Mr.
Farmer therefore endeavoured to vindicate himself in a
pamphlet, published in 1772, entitled “An Examination
of the late rev. Mr. Le Moine’s Treatise on Miracles,
” in
which he enters into a particular discussion of that performance, and a defence of himself; but the accusation
continued to be repeated, particularly by a writer in th?
London Magazine.
Mr. Fell, and which shew Mr. Farmer’s sensibility to the attack that had been made upon him by that writer. Indeed, says his panegyrist, we cannot approve of the oblique
Mr. Farmer’s last work appeared in 1783, and was entitled “The general prevalence of the worship of Human
Spirits in the ancient lieathen Nations asserted and proved.
”
In this work, which had liule success, there arc a number
of notes referring to Mr. Fell, and which shew Mr. Farmer’s
sensibility to the attack that had been made upon him by
that writer. Indeed, says his panegyrist, we cannot approve of the oblique manner in which some of these notes
are composed. It would have been far preferable in our
author, either not to have taken any notice of Mr. Fell at
all, or to have done it in a more open and manly way.
Mr. Fell was not backward in his own vindication. This
appeared in 1785, in a publication entitled “The Idolatry
of Greece and Rome distinguished from that of other
heathen nations: in a letter to the reverend Hugh Farmer.
”
At the same time that in this tract ample retaliation is
made upon Mr. Farmer for his personal severities, it
appears to us to contain many things, which, if he had
continued to publish on the subject, would have been
found deserving of consideration and reply.
e' s Latin is sometimes exceptionable, allows him, nevertheless, to have been a diligent and learned writer. 6. “Florilcgium Epigrammatum Graecorum, eorumque Latino versu
His works are: 1. “Notse ad Juveualis et Persu Satyras,
” Lond. Junii Juvenalis et Auli Persii Flacci Satyrse cum annotationibus ad
marginem, quse obscurissima quseque dilucidare possint.
Tertia Editio, prioribus multo emendatior et auctior.
”
book is dedicated to Henry prince of Wales, who received
the author very kindly, and in some measure commanded
him to write such comments on all the Latin poets. 2.
“Notae ad Seneca? Tragcedias,
” Lond. L. et M, Annaei Senecte Trngccdisc.
Post omnes omnium editiones recensionesque editio tertia
auctior et emendatior, opera et studio Thorn te Farnabii.
”
To this edition is prefixed a privilege granted him from the
king, dated October 1634, for the sole printing of that,
and several other of his works, for one-and-twenty years.
The book is accompanied with commendatory verses, by
Daniel Heinsius, Richard Andrews, M. D. Hugh Holland,
Laurence Whitaker, and Na, Tomkins. 3. “Notrc ad
Martialis Epigrammata,
” Lond. Lucani Pharsalia, sive de Bello Civili Caesaris
et Pompeii Libri X. Adjeclis ad marginem notis T. Farnabii, quae loca obscuriora illustrent,
” London, Index Rhetoricus Scholis et Institutioni tenerioris
Ætatis accommodatus,
” Lond. Formulae Oratoriae et Index Poeticus.
” The fifth edition was
printed at London, in Index Rhetoricus et Oratorius, Scholis et Institutioni
tenerioris Ætatis accommodatus. Cui adjiciuntur Formula;
Oratoriae et Index Poeticus. Opera et studio Thomae Farnabii. Editio quinta, prioribus emendation
” This book
is dedicated to Dominico Molino, Senator of Venice. The
Index Poeticus, annexed to this, was first printed at London in 1634. In the preface to the “Index Rhetoricus,
”
Mr. Farnabie informs his readers, that he had published,
about twenty years before, his Scheme of Tropes, in verse,
without his nume which, meeting with success, was
claimed by a certain plagiary upon which our author
composed his “Index Rhetoricus.
” Mons. Gibert speaks
of this work with commendation, and observes that Mons.
BaiHet has passed a favourable judgment upon it. Father
Vavasseur, though he afiirms that Mr. Farnabie' s Latin is
sometimes exceptionable, allows him, nevertheless, to have
been a diligent and learned writer. 6. “Florilcgium Epigrammatum Graecorum, eorumque Latino versu a variis
redditorum,
” London, Notae ad
Virgilium,
” London, 1634, 8vo. 8. Ci Systeraa Grammaticum,“London, 1641, 8vo. King Charles the First ordered
Mr. Farnabie to write a Latin grammar, for the use of all
the schools, when that which had been established by law,
and against which many complaints had been made, was to
be reformed. 9.
” Notae in Ovidii Metamorphoses,“Paris,
1637, folio; and London, in 12mo, 1677, &c. 10.
” Phrasiologia Anglo-Latina,“London, 8vo. 11.
” Tabula? Graeca? Linguae,“London, 4to. 12.
” Syntaxis,“London, 8vo.
13.
” Notse in Terentium.“Our author had finished his
notes upon Terence only as far as the fourth comedy,
when he died. But Dr. Meric Casaubon completed the
two last comedies, and published the whole at London,
1651, 12mo. Anthony Wood hath added to the catalogue,
” Epistolac variae ad doctissimos Viros." But this article
does not refer to a distinct publication, but to the letters
occasionally written by Farnabie to learned men, and particularly to Vossius.
, an ingenious comic writer, was the son of a clergyman in Ireland, and born at Londonderry
, an ingenious comic writer,
was the son of a clergyman in Ireland, and born at Londonderry in 1678, where he received the rudiments of
education, and discovered a genius early devoted to the
muses. When he was very young, he gave specimens of
his poetry; and discovered a force of thinking, and turn
of expression, much beyond his years. His parents, having a numerous issue, could bestow on him no other fortune than a liberal education therefore, when he was
qualified for the university, he was sent in 1694 to Trinitycollege, in Dublin. He made great progress in his studies,
and acquired a considerable reputation: but his gay and
volatile disposition could not long relish the gravity and
retirement of a college life, and therefore, soon quitting
it, he betook himself to the diversions of the stage, and
got admitted into the company of the Dublin theatre. He
had the advantage of a good person, and was well received
as an actor, though his voice was somewhat weak: for
which reason he resolved to continue on the stage, till
something better should offer. But his resolution was soon
broken by an accident: being to play the part of Guyomar, who kills Vasquez, in Dryden’s “Indian Emperor,
”
and forgetting to exchange his sword for a foil, in the engagement he wounded his brother tragedian, who represented Vasquez, very dangerously; and though the wound
did not prove mortal, yet he was so shocked at it, that he
determined never more to appear on the stage.
ar’s comedies is said, in general, far to have exceeded his own expectations; and of his merits as a writer, various opinions have been entertained. It may be allowed,
The success of Farquhar’s comedies is said, in general, far to have exceeded his own expectations; and of his merits as a writer, various opinions have been entertained. It may be allowed, however, that he was usually happy in the choice of his subjects, and adorned them with a great variety of characters and incidents that his style is pure and unaffected his wit natural and flowing and his plots generally well contrived. Licentiousness has been justly objectecl to his comedies, which was the vice of the times. Pope used to call him a farce-writer; but his productions were so pleasing, that many years ago his works had gone through eight editions; and to this day his comedies keep their rank upon the stage.
, a poetical and miscellaneous writer, was born in Yorkshire about 1721. He was educated at Leeds,
, a poetical and miscellaneous writer,
was born in Yorkshire about 1721. He was educated at
Leeds, under the care of the rev. Mr. Cookson, vicar of
that parish, from whence he went to Jesus college, Cambridge, and took his bachelor’s degree in 1741, and his
master’s in 1745. After being admitted into holy orders,
he settled at Bramham in Yorkshire, near the elegant seat
of that name belonging to Robert Lane, esq. the beauties
of which afforded him the first subject for his muse. He
published his “Bramham Park,
” in Descriptions of
May and Winter,
” from Gawen Douglas, the former ia
1752, the latter in 1754: these brought him into considerable notice as a poetical antiquary, and it was hoped that
he would have been encouraged to modernize the whole of
that author’s works. About the year last mentioned, he
removed to the curacy of Croydon in Surrey, where he had
an opportunity of courting the notice of archbishop Herring, who resided there at that time, and to whom, among
other complimentary verses, he addressed an “Ode on
his Grace’s recovery,
” which was printed in Dodsley’s Collection. These attentions, and his general merit as a
scholar, induced the archbishop to collate him, in 1755, to
the vicarage of Orpington, with St. Mary Cray in Kent.
In 1757 he had occasion to lament his patron’s death in a
pathetic elegy, styled Aurelius, printed with his grace’s
sermons in 1763, but previously in our author’s volume of
poems in 17-61. About the same time he married miss
Furrier of Leeds. In April 1774, by the late Dr. Plumptre’s favour, he exchanged his vicarage for the rectory of
Hayes, This, except the office of chaplain to the princess
dowager of Wales, was the only ecclesiastical promotion
he obtained.
, a barrister and law writer, was
, a barrister and law writer, was
y with respect. His three disputations at Paris are confessed by Holden, an eminent English catholic writer, to have done more harm to the popish cause than thirtythree
In 1610, and the two following years, we find him in
attendance upon sir Thomas Edmondes, the king’s minister
at the court of France. Several of the sermons he preached,
during this time, in the ambassador’s chapel, are collected
in his “Clavis Mystica,
” and those which were levelled at
the errors of popery are said to have been very successful
both in converting some catholics, and in confirming the
opinions of those who had before embraced. the doctrines
of the reformation. He had also very frequent conferences
in the Cleremont with the Jesuits, and with the members
of the Sorboane, but especially with fathers Sirmund and
Petau, who, although they at first ridiculed his figure, for
he was low of stature, yet afterwards were impressed with
a regard for his controversial talents, and treated his memory with respect. His three disputations at Paris are
confessed by Holden, an eminent English catholic writer,
to have done more harm to the popish cause than thirtythree he had read of before. By most of the foreign universities he was held in such honour as a disputant, that in
the tables of the celebrated schoolmen, whom they honoured with the epithets of resolute, subtle, angelic, &c.
he was called acutissimus et acerrimus. According to
Wood, he commenced B. D. in 1613, and was the preacher
at the act of that year. His sermon on this occasion is
said to have been No. 37. in the “Clavis Mystica;
” but,
according to the evidence of his nephew John Featley, he
did not take that degree until 1615, and the sermon he delivered was a Latin concio ad clerum, dated March 25. In
1610 he had preached the rehearsal sermon at Oxford, and
by the bishop of London’s appointment he discharged the
same duty at St. Paul’s cross in 1613. By invitation from
Mr. Ezekiel Ascot, who had been his pupil, he accepted
the rectory of Northill in Cornwall, which he vacated on
his institution to the rectory of Lambeth in 1618. a change
which, if not more profitable, was certainly highly agrees
ahle to him, as he became now, by the recommendation
of the university, domestic chaplain to Abbot, archbishop
of Canterbury.
years. Dr. Leo represents him as being “in his nature, meek, gracious, affable, and merciful:” as a writer he was esteemed in his time one of the ablest defenders of the
While the ecclesiastical constitution stood, Dr. Featley
was member of several of the convocations; and upon account, as is supposed, of his being a Calvinist, he was in
1642 appointed by the parliament one of the Assembly of
Divines. He is said to have continued longer with them
than any other member of the episcopal persuasion; but
this was no longer than he discovered the drift of their
proceedings. That he was not acceptable to the ruling
party, appears from his becoming in the same year, a victim to their revenge. In November, the soldiers sacked
his church at Acton, and at Lambeth would have murdered him, had he not made his escape. These outrages
were followed Sept. 30, 1643, by his imprisonment in
Peter-house, in Aldersgate-street, the seizure of his library
and goods, and the sequestration of his estate. Charges
were preferred against him of the most absurd and contradictory kind, which it was to little purpose to answer.
He was voted out of his living. Among his pretended
offences were, that he refused to assent to every clause in
the solemn league and covenant, and that he corresponded
with archbishop Usher, who was with the king at Oxford.
During his imprisonment, he amused himself by writing
his celebrated treatise, entitled “The Dippers dipt, or the
Anabaptists ducked and plunged over head and ears, at a
disputation in Southwark.
” It is, however, a striking
proof of that anarchy of sentiment which disgraced the
nation at this period, that he not only dedicates this book
to the parliament which had imprisoned him, but exhorts
them to employ the sword of justice against “heretics and
schismatics,
” although himself was n'ow suffering under the
latter description by that very parliament. He was better
employed soon after in an able vindication of the church
of England against the innovators who now bore rule; but
his long confinement of eighteen months impaired his
health and shortened his days. His situation appears to
have been represented to his persecutors, but it was not
until six weeks before his death that he obtained leave
from the parliament to remove to Chelsea for the benefit
of the air. Here he died April 17, 1645, on the very day
that he was bound to have returned to his confinement at
Peter-house. It was reported that a few hours before his
deaih, he prayed for destruction to the enemies of the
church and state, in expressions which have been called
“irascible and resentful.
” How far they were used by
him seems doubtful but had he prayed only for the restoration of the constitution in church and state, it might have
still, in those times, been imputed to him that the destruction of their enemies was a necessary preliminary and a
fair innuendo. He was buried in the chancel of Lambeth
church, where his funeral sermon was preached by Dr.
Leo or Loe, who had been in habits of intimacy with him
for thirty-seven years. Dr. Leo represents him as being
“in his nature, meek, gracious, affable, and merciful:
” as
a writer he was esteemed in his time one of the ablest defenders of the doctrines of the reformation against the papists, and one of the ablest opponents of the anabaptists.
his character with observing, that “if the inquisitive antiquary, the clear, faithful, and accurate writer, be justly valued by literary characters; the intelligent and
Sir John Fenn distinguished himself early by his application to the study of our national history and antiquities,
for which he had formed great collections, particularly
that of Peter Le Neve, for the contiguous counties of Norfolk and Suffolk, from the wreck of that of Thomas Martin, to erect a monument to whose memory in the church
where he was buried, he left a large sum of money. Among
the rest was a large collection of original letters, written
during the reigns of Henry VI. Edward IV. Richard III.
and Henry VII. by such of the Paston family and others,
who were personally present in court and camp, and were,
in those times, persons of great consequence in the county
of Norfolk. These letters contain many curious and authentic state anecdotes, relating not only to Norfolk, but
to the kingdom in general. Two volumes of them were
published in 1787, 4to, and dedicated by permission to
his majesty, who rewarded the merit of the editor with the
honour of knighthood. Two more volumes appeared in
1789, with notes and illustrations by sir John and a fifth
was left nearly ready for the press, which, however, if we
mistake not, has not yet been published. Though he
contributed nothing to the “Archaeologia
” of the Society
of Antiquaries, of which he was a fellow, he was a benefactor to them, by drawing up “Three Chronological
Tables
” of their members, which were printed in a 4to
pamphlet, 1734, for the use of the society. His biographer concludes his character with observing, that “if the
inquisitive antiquary, the clear, faithful, and accurate
writer, be justly valued by literary characters; the intelligent and upright magistrate, by the inhabitants of the
county in which he resided; the informing and pleasing
companion, the warm and steady friend, the honest and
worthy man, the good and exemplary Christian, by those
with whom he was cpnnected; the death of few individuals
will be more sensibly felt, more generally regretted, or
more sincerely lamented.
”
, an eminent writer and statesman during the reigns of Elizabeth and James I. was
, an eminent writer and
statesman during the reigns of Elizabeth and James I. was
brother to the preceding, but the time of his birth does not
appear. He was certainly educated liberally, though we
cannot tell where; since, while a young man, he gave
many proofs of his acquaintance with ancient and modern
learning, and of his being perfectly versed in the French,
Spanish, and Italian languages. He is well known for a
translation from the Italian of “The History of the Wars
of Italy, by Guicciardini,
” the dedication of which to
queen Elizabeth bears date Jan. 7, 1579. This was, however, his last work. He had published before, 1. “Certaine Tragical Discourses written oute of French and Latin,
” An Account of a Dispute
at Paris, between two Doctors of the Sorbonne, and two
Ministers of God’s Word,
”An
Epistle, or Godly Admonition, sent to the Pastors of the
Flemish Church in Antwerp, exhorting them to concord
with other Ministers: written by Antony de Carro, 1578,
”
a translation. 4. “Golden Epistles; containing variety
of discourses, both moral, philosophical, and divine, gathered as well out of the remainder of Guevara’s works,
as other authors, Latin, French, and Italian. Newly corrected and amended. Mon heur viendra, 1577.
” The
familiar epistles of Guevara had been published in English, by one Edward Hellowes, in 1574; but this collection of Fenton’s consists of such pieces as were not contained in that work. The epistle dedicatory is to the right
honourable and vertuous lady Anne, countess of Oxen ford;
and is dated from the author’s chamber in the Blackfriars,
London, Feb. 4, 1575. This lady was the daughter of
William Cecil lord Burleigh; and it appears from the
dedication, that her noble father was our author’s best
patron. Perhaps his chief purpose in translating and publishing this work, was to testify his warm zeal and absolute
attachment to that great minister.
omb with his wife’s father, the lord chancellor Weston; leaving behind him the character of a polite writer, an accomplished courtier, an able statesman, and a true friend
In 1603, sir Geoffrey married his only daughter Katherine to Mr. Boyle, afterwards the great earl of Corke; and died at his house in Dublin, Oct. 19, 1608. He was interred with much funeral solemnity at the cathedral church of St. Patrick, in the same tomb with his wife’s father, the lord chancellor Weston; leaving behind him the character of a polite writer, an accomplished courtier, an able statesman, and a true friend to the English nation, and protestant interest in Ireland. His translation of Guicciardini, and his Guevara’s Epistles, have lately risen in price, since the language of the Elizabethan period has been more studied; and the style of Fenton, like that of most of his contemporaries, is far superior to that of the authors of the succeeding reign, if we except Raleigh and Knowlles.
anslated double the number of books in the Odyssey that Pope has owned. “His reward,” adds the noble writer, “was a trifle, an arrant trifle. He has even told me, that
His next engagement was with Pope himself, who after
the great success of his translation of the Iliad, undertook
that of the Odyssey, and determined to engage auxiliaries.
Twelve books he took to himself, and twelve he distributed
between Broome and Fenton. According to Johnson and
Warton, Fenton translated the first, fourth, nineteenth
and twentieth. But John, earl of Orrery, in a letter to
Mr. Duncombe, asserts that Fenton translated double the
number of books in the Odyssey that Pope has owned.
“His reward,
” adds the noble writer, “was a trifle, an
arrant trifle. He has even told me, that he thought Pope
feared him more than he loved him. He had no opinion
of Pope’s heart, and declared him, in the words of bishop
Atterbury, Mens curia in corpore curvo.
” It is, however,
no small praise to both Fen tun and Broome, that the readers
of poetry have never been able to distinguish their books
from those of Pope. In 1723, Fenton’s tragedy of “Mariamne
” was brought on the stage in Lincoln’s-inn-fields,
and was performed with such success, that the profits of
the author are said to have amounted to nearly a thousand
pounds, with which he very honourably discharged the
debts contracted by his fruitless attendance on Mr. St.
John. The poetical merit of this tragedy is confessedly
great, but the diction is too figurative and ornamental.
Colley Cibber has been termed insolent for advising Fenton to relinquish poetry, by which we presume he meant
dramatic poetry; but Cibber, if insolent, was not injudicious, for Mariamne has not held its place on the stage,
In 1 1727, Fenton revised a new edition of Milton’s Poems,
and prefixed to it a short but elegant and impartial life of
the author. In 1729 he published a very splendid edition
of Waller, with notes, which is still a book of considerable
value.
completion of this work. An history of his life and inventions was published at Venice in 1764, by a writer whose name was Memo, 4to.
, a celebrated self-taught mechanic, was born at Bassano, in the territory of Padua, in 1692. His first occupation being that of a sawyer, for his parents were very poor, he invented a saw which worked by the wind, and went on progressively to several more curious inventions, such as making clocks in iron, hydraulic machines, &c. till he was noticed by the great men of Italy. In his native town of Bassano, he constructed a famous bridge over the Brenta, remarkable for the boldness of its design, and the solidity of its construction. He died soon after the completion of this work. An history of his life and inventions was published at Venice in 1764, by a writer whose name was Memo, 4to.
nch lawyer, was born in 1515, and was a counsellor of the parliament of Bourdeaux. He was an elegant writer in Latin, an imitator of the style of Terence, admired by Scaliger,
, a French lawyer, was born
in 1515, and was a counsellor of the parliament of Bourdeaux. He was an elegant writer in Latin, an imitator of
the style of Terence, admired by Scaliger, and honoured
by him with the name of Atticus. --He continued the history of France in Latin (which Paulus Æmilius, a writer of Verona, had given from the reign of Pharamond to 1488) as far as the end of the reign of Francis I. This
work was published at Paris, by Vascosan, in 1554, fol.
and 1555, 8vo. It is copious, but not too long, and
abounds with curious anecdotes and very exact details.
He wrote also “Observations sur la Coutume de Bourdeaux,
” Lyons,
the rest, in a manner, as Vossius has observed, not favourable to the reputation of Flaccus. Another writer, however, in the eighth century, afterwards revenged this treatment
, was a celebrated grammarian of
antiquity, who abridged a work of “Verrius Flaccus de
signih'catione verborum,
” as is supposed, in the fourth
century. Flaccus’s work had been greatly commended by
Pliny, Aulus Gellius, Priscian, and other ancient writers,
but Festus in his abridgment took unwarrantable liberties;
for he was not content with striking out a vast number of
words, but pretended to criticize the rest, in a manner, as
Vossius has observed, not favourable to the reputation of
Flaccus. Another writer, however, in the eighth century,
afterwards revenged this treatment of Flaccus, by abridging Festus in the same way. This was Paul the deacon,
who so maimed and disfigured Festus, that it was scarce
possible to know his work, which lay in this miserable
state till, a considerable fragment being found in the library
of cardinal Farnese, some pains were taken to put it again
into a little order. The first, or princeps editio, is without
a date, but supposed to have been printed in 1470, which,
was followed by one with the date of 1471. Since that time
there have been various editions by Scaliger, Fulvius Ursinus, Aldus Minucius, and others; but the most complete
is the Delphin edition of Paris, 1681, in 4to, published by
Dacier, or perhaps the reprint of it by Le Clero, Amst.
1699. It is also among the “Auctores Latinae Linguae,
”
collected by Gothofredus in
, an English divine, and laborious writer, was born of reputable parents, at Hunmanby near Scarborough
, an English divine, and laborious
writer, was born of reputable parents, at Hunmanby near
Scarborough in Yorkshire in 1671. In his education he
was much encouraged by his uncle the rev. Mr. Fiddes of
Brightwell in Oxfordshire, who was as a father to him.
After being instructed at a private school at Wickham in
that neighbourhood, he was admitted of Corpus Christi,
and then of University college, in Oxford; where by his
parts and address he gained many friends. He did not,
however, continue there; but, after taking a bachelor of
arts degree in 1693, returned to his relations, and married,
in the same year, Mrs. Jane Anderson, a lady of good
family and fortune. In 1694, he was ordained priest by
Dr. Sharp, archbishop of York; and not long after, presented to the rectory of Halsham in that county, of about
90l. per annum. Halsham, being situated in a marsh,
proved the occasion of much ill health to Fiddes and his
family; and he had the misfortune, while there, to be suddenly so deprived of his speech, as never after to be able
to utter words very articulately, unless his organs were
strengthened with two or three glasses of wine, which, as
he was a mun of great temperance, was to him an excess.
His diocesan, however, dispensed with his residence upon
his benefice for the future; on which he removed to Wickham, and continued there some months. Being no longer
able to display his talents in preaching, which before were
confessedly great, and having a numerous family, he resolved to devote himself entirely to writing. For this purpose, he went to London in 1712; and, by the favour of
dean Swift, was introduced to the earl of Oxford, who received him kindly, and made him one of his chaplains.
The dean had a great esteem for Fiddes, and recommended
his cause with the warmth and sincerity of a friend. The
queen soon after appointed him chaplain to the garrison at
Hull, and would probably have provided handsomely for
him, had not death prevented her. Losing his patrons
upon the change of the ministry in 1714, he lost the above
mentioned chaplainship; and the expences of his family
i icreasing, as his ability to supply them lessened, he was
obliged to apply himself to writing with greater assiduity
than ever. Yet he continued in high esteem with contemporary writers, especially those of his own party; and was
encouraged by some of the most eminent men of those
times. By the generosity of his friend and relation Dr.
Radcliffe, the degree of bachelor of divinity was conferred
upon him by diploma, Feb. 1, 1713, and in 1718 he was
honoured by the university of Oxford with that of doctor,
in consideration of his abilities as a writer. He died at the
house of his friend Anstis at Putney, in 1725, aged fifty four years, leaving behind him a' family consisting of a wife
and six children. His eldest daughter was married to the
rev. Mr. Barcroft, curate of St. George’s, Hanover-square,
who abridged Taylor’s “Ductor Dubitantium.
” Dr. Fiddes
was buried in Fulham churchyard, "near the remains of
bishop Compton, to whom he had been much obliged.
may be esteemed) of placing the life and character of Wolsey in a more just light than any preceding writer. As the munificent founder of Christ church, he could not avoid
His first publication appears to have been, 1. “A prefatory Epistle concerning some Remarks to be published
on Homer’s Iliad: occasioned by the proposals of Mr. Pope
towards a new English version of that poem, 17 14,
” 12mo.
It is addressed to Dr. Swift. It would seem to have been
his intention to write a kind of moral commentary upon
Homer; but, probably for want of encouragement, this never
appeared. The first work by which he distinguished himself in any considerable degree, was, 2. “Theologia Speculativa: or the first part of a body of divinity under that
title, wherein are explained, the principles of Natural and
Revealed Religion, 1718,
” folio. This met with a favourable reception from the public: yet when Stackhouse, a
man certainly not of much higher talents, afterwards executed a work of a similar nature, he endeavoured to depreciate the labours of his predecessor. Dr. Fiddes’s second part is entitled “Theologia Practica, wherein are
explained the duties of Natural and Revealed Religion;
”
and was published in Fifty-two practical Discourses on
several subjects, six of which were never before printed.
”
These, as well as his Body of Divinity, were published by
a subscription, which was liberally encouraged at Oxford.
But the work which gained him the most friends, and most
enemies, was, 4. “The Life of Cardinal Wolsey, 1724,
”
in folio, dedicated to the chancellors, vice-chancellors,
doctors, and other members of the two universities; and
encouraged by a large subscription. This work was attacked
with great severity in “The London Journal,
” and the author charged him with being a papist; who repelled this
accusation in, 5. “An Answer to Britannicus, compiler of
the London Journal, 1725,
” in two letters; in the first of
which he endeavours to obviate the charge of popery; in
the second, to show his impartiality in the life of this cardinal. Dr. Knight, in the “Life of Erasmus,
” published a
little after our author’s death, attacked him in the severest
terms, accusing him of speaking irreverently of Erasmus,
“probably,
” says he, “because he had by his writings favoured the reformation.
” Dr. Fiddes, he says, vilifies the
reformation, depreciates the instruments of it, and palliates the absurdities of the Romish church. He declares
also that the life was written at the solicitation of bishop
Atterbury, on the occasion of the dispute in which he was
then engaged with archbishop Wake: and that Atterbury
supplied him with materials, suggested matter and method,
entertained him at his deanery, procured him subscribers,
and “laid the whole plan for forming such a life as might
blacken the reformation, cast lighter colours upon popery,
and even make way for a popish pretender.
” Fiddes, indeed, had given occasion for part of this surmise, by saying
that “a very learned prelate generously offered to let me
compile the life of cardinal Wolsey in his house.
” Suspicion was likewise heightened by the eulogium he made
on Atterbury, a little before his deprivation. Though it
may be difficult to determine how far this author was at
the bottom an enemy to the reformation, yet in his Life of
Wolsey, his prejudices in favour of the ancient religion
are unquestionably strong, and in these he shared with
some contemporaries of no inconsiderable fame. Asa collection of facts, however, the work is highly valuable, and
he has the merit (whatever that may be esteemed) of placing
the life and character of Wolsey in a more just light than
any preceding writer. As the munificent founder of Christ
church, he could not avoid a certain reverence for Wolsey,
nor, if Atterbury assisted him, can we wonder at that prelate’s disposition to think well of so great a benefactor to
learning, who would have proved a still greater benefactor,
had he not been sacrificed to the avarice and caprice of
his royal master.
tained every thinghe read, and never made use of notes in preaching. He was far from being a nervous writer, abounding in matter, but was prolix and tedious, for which
, beyond all comparison the first novel- writer of this country, was born at Sharpham Park in Somersetshire,
, beyond all comparison the first
novel-writer of this country, was born at Sharpham Park
in Somersetshire, April 22, 1707. His father, Edmund
Fielding, esq. was the third son of John Fielding, D. D.
canon of Salisbury, who was the fifth son of George earl
of Desmond, and brother to William third earl of Denbigh, nephew to Basil the second earl, and grandson to
William, who was first raised to the peerage. Edmund
Fielding served under the duke of Maryborough, and towards the close of king George the First’s reign, or the
accession of George II. was promoted to the rank of a
lieutenant-general. His mother was daughter to the first
judge Gould, and aunt to sir Henry Gould, lately one of
the judges of the common pleas. This lady, besides Henry,
who seems to have been the eldest, had four daughters,
and another son named Edmund, who was an officer in the
sea-service. Afterwards, in consequence of his father’s
second marriage, Fielding had six half-brothers, George,
James, Charles, John, William, and Basil. Of these nothing memorable is recorded, except of John, who will be
the subject of a subsequent article as will also Sarah, the
sister of Henry Fielding. His father died in 1740.
Henry Fielding received the first rudiments of his education at home, under the care of the rev. Mr. Oliver, for
whom he seems to have had no great regard, as he is said
to have designed a portrait of him in the very humorous
yet unfavourable character of parson Tralliber, in his “Joseph Andrews.
” From this situation he was removed to
Eton school, where he had an opportunity of cultivating a
very early intimacy and friendship with several young men
who afterwards became conspicuous personages in the
kingdom, such as lord Lyttelton, Mr. Fox, Mr. Pitt, sir
Charles Hanbury Williams, &c. who ever through life retained a warm regard for him. But these were not the
only advantages he reaped at that great seminary of education; for, by an assiduous application to study, and the
possession of strong and peculiar talents, he became, before he left that school, uncommonly versed in Greek
authors, and a master of the Latin classics. Thus accomplished, at about eighteen years of age he left Eton, and
went to Leyden, where he studied under the most celebrated civilians for about two years, when, the remittances
from England not coming so regularly as at first, he was
obliged to return to London.
flattered himself that he should find resources in his wit and invention, and acccordingly commenced writer for the stage in 1727, at which time he had not more than attained
General Fielding’s family being very greatly increased
by his second marriage, it became impossible for him to
make such appointments for this his eldest son as he could
have wished; his allowance was therefore either very ill paid
or entirely neglected. This unhappy situation soon produced all the ill consequences which could arise from poverty and dissipation. Possessed of a strong constitution,
a lively imagination, and a disposition naturally but little
formed for Œconomy, Henry Fielding found himself his
own master, in a place where the temptations to every
expensive pleasure are numerous, and the means of gratifying them easily attainable. From this unfortunately
pleasing situation sprang the source of every misfortune or
uneasiness that Fielding afterwards felt through life. He
very soon found that his finances were by no means proportioned to the brisk career of dissipation into which he
had launched; yet, as disagreeable impressions never continued long upon his mind, but only rouzed him to struggle through his difficulties with the greater spirit, he flattered himself that he should find resources in his wit and
invention, and acccordingly commenced writer for the
stage in 1727, at which time he had not more than attained the completion of his twentieth year.
His first dramatic attempt was a piece called “Love in
several Masques,
” which, though it immediatetysucceeded
the long and crowded run of the “Provoked Husband,
”
met with a favourable reception, as did likewise his second play, “The Temple Beau,
” which came out in the
following year. He did not, however, meet with equal
success in all his dramatic works, for he has even printed,
in the title-page of one of his farces, “as it was damned
at the theatre-royal Drury-lane;
” and he himself informs
us, in the general preface to his miscellanies, that for the
“Wedding-Day,
” though acted six nights, his profits from
the house did not exceed fifty pounds. Nor did a much
better fate attend some of his earlier productions, so that,
though it was his lot always to write from necessity, he
would, probably, notwithstanding his writings, have laboured continually under that necessity, had not the severity of the public, and the malice of his enemies, met
with a noble alleviation from the patronage of several persons of distinguished rank and character, particularly the
late dukes of Richmond and Roxburgh, John duke of
Argyle, the first lord Lyttelton, &c. the last-named of
which noblemen, not only by his friendship softened the
rigour of our author’s misfortunes while he lived, but also
by his generous ardour has vindicated his character, and
done justice to his memory, after death.
agreeably entertained; and in itiose which he has in any degree borrowed from Moliere, or;.ny other writer, he has done great honour and justice t>j Irs original, by the
Fielding’s genius excelled most in those strong, lively, and natural paintings of the characters of mankind, and the movements of the human heart, which constitute the basis of his novels; yet, as comedy bears the closest affinity to this kind of writing, his dramatic pieces, every one of which is comic, are far from being contemptible. His farces and ballad pieces, more especially, have a sprightImess of manner, and a furcibleness of character, by which it is impossible not to be agreeably entertained; and in itiose which he has in any degree borrowed from Moliere, or;.ny other writer, he has done great honour and justice t>j Irs original, by the manner in which he has treated the subject. Having married a second time, he left a wife and four children, who were educated under the care of their uncle, with the aid of a very generous donation given annually by Ralph Allen, esq. the celebrated man of Bath. One of his sons is still living, a barrister of considerable reputation. This second wife died at Canterbury, in May 1802, at a very advanced age. Fielding’s frame was naturally very robust, and his height rather above six feet. It was thought that no picture was taken of him while he lived, and it is certain that the portrait prefixed to his Works was a sketch executed by his friend Ho r garth, from memory. We find, however, in Mr. Nichols’s new edition of the Life of Bowyer, a beautiful engraving from a miniature in the possession of his grand-daughter, Mrs. Sophia Fielding. His character as a man, may in great measure be deduced from the incidents of his life, but cannot perhaps be delineated better than by his biographer Mr. Murphy, with whose words this article may properly be closed.
ence, and one who would still adhere to the law.” But from a comparison of every authority, a recent writer observes, that he appears to have been far from a virtuous or
, lord Say and Sele, a person of
literary merit, but not so well known on that account as
for the part he bore in the Grand Rebellion, was born at
Brpughton in Oxfordshire, in 1582, being the eldest son
of sir Richard Fiennes, to whom James I. had restored and
confirmed the dignity of baron Say and Sele: and, after
being properly instructed at Winchester school, was sent
in 1596 to New-college in Oxford, of which, by virtue of
his relationship to the founder, he was made fellow. After
he had spent some years in study, he travelled into foreign
countries, and then returned home with the reputation of
a wise and prudent man. When the war was carried on in
the Palatinate, he contributed largely to it, according to
his estate, which was highly pleasing to king James; but,
indulging his neighbours by leaving it to themselves to pay
what they thought fit, he was, on notice given to his majesty, committed to custody in June 1622. He was,
however, soon released; and, in July 1624, advanced from a
baron to be viscount Say and Scle. At this time, says
Wood, he stood up for the privileges of Magna Charta;
but, after the rebellion broke out, treated it with the utmost contempt: and when the long-parliament began in
3640, he shewed himself so active that, as Wood says, he
and Hampden and Pym, with one or two more, were
esteemed parliament-drivers, or swayers of all the parliaments in which they sat. In order to reconcile him to tne
court, he had the place of mastership of the court of wards
given him in May 1641 but this availed nothing; for,
when arms were taken up, he acted openly against the
king. Feb. 1642, his majesty published two proclamations,
commanding all the officers of the court of wards to.
attend him at Oxford; but lord Say refusing, was outlawed,
and attainted of treason. He was the last 'who held the
office of master of this court, which was abolished in 1646
by the parliament, on which occasion 10,000l. was granted
to him, with a part of the earl of Worcester’s estate, as a
compensation. In 1648 he opposed any personal treaty
with his majesty, yet the same year was one of the parliament-commissioners in the Isle of Wight, when they
treated with the king about peace: at which time he is
said to have urged against the king this passage out of
Hooker’s “Ecclesiastical Polity,
” that “though the king
was singulis major, yet he was universis minor
” that is,
greater than any individual, yet less than the whole community. After the king’s death, he joined with the Independents, as he had done before with the Presbyterians;
and became intimate with Oliver, who made him one of
his house of lords. “After the restoration of Charles II.
when he had acted,
” says Wood, “as a grand rebel for
his own ends almost twenty years, he was rewarded forsooth with the honourable offices of lord privy seal, and
lord chamberlain of the household; while others, that had
suffered in estate and body, and had been reduced to a bit
of bread for his majesty’s cause, had then little or nothing
given to relieve them; for which they were to thank a
hungry and great officer, who, to fill his own coffers, was
the occasion of the utter ruin of many.
” Wood relates
also, with some surprise, that this noble person, after he
had spent eighty years mostly in an unquiet and discontented condition, had been a grand promoter of the rebellion, and had in some respect been accessary to the
mupdler of Chailes I. died quietly in his bed, April 14, 1662,
and was buried with his ancestors at Broughton. On the
restoration he was certainly made lord privy seal, but nut,
as Wood says, chamberlain of the household. Whitlock
says, that “he was a person of great parts, wisdom, and
integrity:
” and Clarendon, though of a contrary, party,
does not deny him to have had these qualities, but only
supposes them to have been wrongly directed, and greatly
corrupted. He calls him, “a man of a close and reserved
nature, of great parts, and of the highest ambition; but
whose ambition would not be satisfied with offices and preferments, without some condescensions and alterations in
ecclesiastical matters. He had for many years been the
oracle of those who were puritans in the worst sense, and
had steered all their counsels and designs. He was a notorious enemy to the church, and to most of the eminent
churchmen, with some of whom he had particular contests.
He had always opposed and contradicted all acts of state,
and all taxes and impositions, which were not exactly legal,
&c. In a word, he had very great authority with all the
discontented party throughout the kingdom, and a good
reputation with many who were not discontented; who
believed him to be a wise man, and of a very useful temper
in an age of licence, and one who would still adhere to
the law.
” But from a comparison of every authority, a
recent writer observes, that he appears to have been far
from a virtuous or amiable man; he was poor, proud, and
discontented, and seems to have opposed the court, partly
at least with the view of extorting preferment from thence.
He had the most chimerical notions of civil liberty, and
upon the defeat of those projects in which he had so great
a share, retired with indignation to the isle of Lundy, on
the Devonshire coast, where he continued a voluntary prisoner until the protector’s death.
, a celebrated Italian political writer, the descendant of a very illustrious but decayed family at
, a celebrated
Italian political writer, the descendant of a very illustrious
but decayed family at Naples, was born there Aug. 18,
1752. His parents had very early destined him for the
military profession, but the attachment he showed to the
acquisition of literary knowledge, induced them to suffer
him to pursue his own course of study. His application
to general literature became then intense, and before he
was twenty years of age, he was not only an accomplished
Greek and Latin scholar, but had made himself intimately
acquainted with mathematics, ancient history, and the
laws of nature and nations as administered in every country. He had also begun at this time to write two works, the
one on public and private education, and the other on the
duties of princes, as founded on nature and social order,
and although he did not complete his design in either, yet
he incorporated many of the sentiments advanced in his
great work on legislation. He afterwards studied law,
more in compliance with the will of his friends, who considered the bar as the introduction to public honour and
preferment, than from his own inclination; and the case
of an arbitrary decision occurring, he published an excellent work on the subject, entitled “Riflessioni Politiche
sull' ultima legge Sovrana, che riguarda ramministrazione
della giustizia,
” Naples, Scienza della Legislatione,
” at Naples the third and
fourth appeared in Quidquid ex Filangierio amavimus,
quidquid mirati sumus, manet mansurumque est in animis
hominum, in aeternitate temporum, famarerum.
” In
too much in the form of compilations from other authors to entitle him to the credit of an original writer.
, was a native of Paris, who taught
ethics, and afterwards philosophy, at the college de la
Marche, and was rector of the university in 1.586. He
took his doctor’s degree, April 9, 1590, and became curate of St. John en Greve. Filesac, who was eminent
among his contemporaries for his firmness, learning, and
piety, died at Paris, senior of the Sorbonne, and dean of
the faculty of theology, May 27, 1638, leaving several
very learned works, the principal of which are, “A Treatise on the sacred Authority of Bishops,
” in Latin, Paris,
on Lent;
” a treatise on the “Origin of Parishes
” treatises on “Auricular Confession;
” on
“Idolatry,
” and on “the Origin of the ancient Statutes
of the Faculty of Paris.
” They are united under the title
of “Opera Pieraque,
” Paris,
, was an ancient Christian writer, and author of a piece entitled “De Er-> rore Profanarum Religionum;”
, was an ancient
Christian writer, and author of a piece entitled “De Er->
rore Profanarum Religionum;
” which he addressed to the
emperors Constantius and Constans, the sons of Constantine. It is supposed to have been written after the death
of Constantine, the eldest son of Constantine the Great,
which happened in the year 340, and before that of Constans, who was slain by Magnentius in the year 350: being addressed to Constantius and Constans, there is reason to believe that Constantine their eldest brother was
dead, and it is evident that Constans was then alive. It is
remarkable, that no ancient writers have made any mention of Firmicus; so that we do not know what he was, of
what country, or of what profession. Some moderns conjecture that he was by birth a Sicilian, and in the former
part of his life an heathen. His treatise “Of the Errors
of the Prophane Religions,
” discovers great parts, great
learning, and great zeal for Christianity, and has been
often printed, sometimes separately, sometimes with other
fathers. Among the separate editions are one printed at
Strasbourg, in 1562, another at Heidelberg, 1599, and a
third at Paris, 1610, all in 8vo; afterwards it was joined
with Minucius Felix, and printed at Amsterdam, 1645, at
Leyden, 1652, and again at Ley den, at the end of the
same father, by James Gronovius, in 1709, 8vo. It is
likewise to be found in the “Bibliotheca Patrum;
” and
at the end of Cyprian, printed at Paris in
, a poetical writer of queen Elizabeth’s reign, was the son of Alexander Fitzgeffrey,
, a poetical writer of queen
Elizabeth’s reign, was the son of Alexander Fitzgeffrey,
of a good family in Cornwall, and born in 1575. He
became a commoner of Broadgate-ball, Oxford, in 1592,
took the degrees in arts, and entered into orders. At
length he became rector of St. Dominick, in his own county, where he was esteemed a grave and learned divine,
as he was, while at the university, an excellent Latin poet.
He died at his parsonage of St. Dominick, and was buried
in the chancel of the church therein 1636. His works
are, 1. “The Life and Death of Sir Francis Drake,
” which
being written in lofty verse, while he was A. B. he was
then called “the high towering Falcon.
” 2. “Affanias
sive epigrammata lib. III. and Cenotaphia, lib. I.
” Oxford,
1601, 8vo. 3. Several Sermcns. Wood has erroneously
ascribed to him a collection of poetry, under the title of
“Choice flowers and descriptions,
” which belongs to Allot, but he appears to have been the author of a prose tract
entitled “A curse for Corne-horders,
” The blessed Birth-day,
”
Divinse,” but he acquired far more celebrity by his astronomical labours, both as an observer and a writer. The abbot Alexander Fixlmillner, a great friend of the sciences,
In 1760 he published a theological work entitled “Reipublicae Sacrae Origines Divinse,
” but he acquired far
more celebrity by his astronomical labours, both as an observer and a writer. The abbot Alexander Fixlmillner, a
great friend of the sciences, and particularly of the mathematics, having resolved in 1747 to form an establishment
in his convent for promoting the latter, first set apart a
spacious room for containing mathematical and philosophical instruments. This paved the way for something
further; and he determined, for the improvement of his
conventuals in astronomy, to erect an observatory. Among
those convents which for a long time have devoted their
leisure and riches to the advancement of science and the
good of mankind, none has distinguished itself more than
that of Kremsmunster. This very old abbey is not the
seat of infidelity and indolence, but a patron of the noblest
branches of science. The observatory founded in 1748,
was completed in 1758, and the superintendence of it was
intrusted to Eugenius Dobler, a brother of the order.
, an English poet and dramatic writer in the reign of Charles II. whose productions, although not
, an English poet and dramatic
writer in the reign of Charles II. whose productions, although not without some proportion of merit, would not
have preserved his name so long as the satire of Dryden,
entitled “Mac Flecnoe,
” is said to have been originally a
Jesuit, and to have had connections with some persons of
high distinction in London, who were of the Roman catholic persuasion. What was the cause of Dryden’s aversion
is not determined. Some have said that when the revolution was completed, Dryden, having some time before
turned papist, became disqualified for holding his place of
poet-laurcat. It was accordingly taken from him, and
conferred on Flecknoe, a man to whom Dryden is said to
have had already a confirmed aversion; and this produced
the famous satire, called from him Mac Flecknoe, one of
the most spirited and amusing of Dryden' s poems; and,
in some degree, the model of the Dunciad. That this is a
spirited poem is as certain, as that all the preceding account from Cihber and his copiers is ridiculous. Shadwell
was the successor of Dryden, as laureat, and in this poem
is ridiculed as the poetical son of Flecknoe. However con.temptibly Dryden treated Flecknoe, the latter at one time
wrote an epigram in his praise, which, with his religion,
might have conciliated both Dryden and Pope. Perhaps
Dryden, says a modern critic, was offended at his invectives against the obscenity of the stage, knowing how much
he had contributed to it. Be this as it may, Flecknoe himself wrote some plays, but not more than one of them was
acted. His comedy, called “Damoiselles a la mode,
” was
printed in For the acting this comedy,
those who have the government of the stage have their
humours, and would.be in treated and I have mine, and
won't intreat them and were all dramatic writers of my
mind, tljeyshould wear their old plays thread-bare, ere
they should have any new,till they better understood
their own interest, and how todistinguish between good
*nd bad.
”
ng converted, and of his resolution to serve the king upon the first opportunity. But the same noble writer, in his “History of the Rebellion,” represents Fleetwood as
Upon his brother-in-law Richard Cromwell’s succeeding
to the title of protector, he signed the order for his proclamation; but soon discovered his enmity to that succession,
being disappointed of the protectorship, which he had expected, and determined that no single person should be
his superior. He joined therefore with the discontented
officers of the army in deposing Richard, after he had persuaded him to dissolve his parliament; and invited the
members of the long parliament, who had continued sitting
till April 20, 1653, when they were dissolved by Oliver
Cromwell, to return to the exercise of their trust. Upon
their meeting in May 1659, he was chosen one of the council of state, and the next month made lieutenant general
of the forces; which post he held till Oct. 12 following,
when he was appointed one of the commissioners to govern
all the forces; and on the 17th of that month was nominated by the general council of state, commander in chief
of all the forces. But in December 1659, finding that his
interest declined in the army, who were now zealous to
have the parliament sit again in honour, freedom, and
safety, and that this, concurring with the general temper
of the nation, would evidently restore the king, he was
advised by Whitelocke to send immediately some person of
trust to his majesty at Breda, with offers of restoring him
to his rights, and by that means anticipate Monk, who
had undoubtedly the same design. Fleetwood in return
asked Whiteiocke, whether he was willing to undertake
that employment; who consenting, it was agreed that he
should prepare himself for the journey that evening or the^
next morning, while the general and his friends should
draw up instructions for him. But sir Henry Vane, general Disbrowe, and col. Berry, coming in at that critical
moment, diverted Fleetwood from this resolution; who
alledged, that those gentlemen had reminded him of his
promise, not to attempt any such affair without general
Lambert’s consent; while Whitelocke, on the other hand,
represented to him that Lambert was at too great a distance to give his assent to a business which must be
immediately acted, and was of the utmost importance
to himself and his friends. He appears, indeed, before
that time, to have entertained some design of espousing
the king’s interests, if he had had resolution to execute it;
for lord Mordaunt, in a letter to the king, dated from
Calais, October 11, 1659, asserts, that Fleetwood then 1
looked upon his majesty’s restoration as so clearly his interest as well as his duty, that he would have declared himself publicly, if the king or the duke of York had landed;
and that although that engagement failed, he was still
ready to come in to his majesty, whensoever he should attempt in person. Sir Edward Hyde likewise, in a letter to
the marquis of Ormonde from Brussels of the same date,
rves, that the general made then great professions of
being converted, and of his resolution to serve the king upon
the first opportunity. But the same noble writer, in his
“History of the Rebellion,
” represents Fleetwood as “a
weak man, though very popular with all the praying part
of the army, whom Lambert knew well how to govern, as
Cromwell had done Fairfax, and then in like manner to
lay him aside;
” and that amidst tbo several desertions of
the soldiers from the interests of their officers to the parliament in December 1659, he remained still in consultation with the “committee of safety;
” and when intelligence was brought of any murmur among the soldiers,
by which a revolt might ensue, and he was desired to go
among them to confirm them, he would fall upon his
knees to his prayers, and could hardly be prevailed with
to go to them. Besides, when he was among them, ancj
in the middle of any discourse, he would invite them all
to prayers, and put himself upon his Icnees before them.
And when some of his friends importuned him to appear
more vigorous in the charge he possessed, without which
they must be all destroyed, they could get no other answer
from him than that “God had spit in his face, and would
not hear him.
” So that it became no great wonder why
Lambert had preferred him to the office of general, and
been content with the second command for himself.
, a miscellaneous writer in the sixteenth century, and a classical translator, was a
, a miscellaneous writer in the
sixteenth century, and a classical translator, was a native
of London. In 1575 he published a version of the “Bucolics of Virgil,
” with notes, a plain and literal translation
verse for verse. In 589 he published a new version, both
of the “Bucolics and Georgics
” with notes, dedicated to
John Whitgift, archbishop of Canterbury. This is in the
regular Alexandrine verse, without rhyme. He supervised, corrected, and enlarged the second edition of Holinshed’s Chronicle in 1585. He translated “Ælian’s Various History
” into English in 1576, which he dedicated to
Goodman, dean of Westminster, und^r the title of “Ælian’s Registre of Hystories,
” 4to. He published also “Certaine select Epistles of Cicero into English,
” Lond. Panoplie of Epistles from Tully, Isocrates, Pliny, and
others,
” Lond. 4to. He translated Synesius’s Greek “Panegyric on Baldness,
” which had been brought into vogue
by Erasmus’s “Moriae Encomium,
” Lond. Fable of Hermes.
” Among some
other pieces he Englished many celebrated books written in Latin about the fifteenth century and at the restoration of learning, which was a frequent practice, after
it became fashionable to compose in English, and our
writers had begun to find the force and use of their own
tongue. Among his original pieces are, 1. “A memorial
of the charitable almes deedes of William Lambe, gentleman of the chapel under Henry VIII. and citizen of London,
” Lond. 1580, 8vo. 2. “The Battel between the
Virtues and Vices,
” ibid. The Diamant
of Devotion, in six parts,
” ibid. The
Cundyt of Comfort,
” Spicilegium of
the Greek Tongue,
” &c. Lond.
, an Irish Roman ecclesiastic and writer, the son of capt. Garret Fleming, nearly related to the lords
, an Irish Roman ecclesiastic and
writer, the son of capt. Garret Fleming, nearly related to
the lords of Slane, was born in the county of Louth, April
17, 1599. Being dedicated by his parents to the church,
they sent him at the age of thirteen to Flanders, and placed
him under the care of his maternal uncle Christopher Cusack, who was president of the colleges of Doway, Tournay, and other seminaries, founded in those parts for the
education of Irish youth in the popish, religion. Having'
studied at Doway for some time, he removed to the college
of St. Anthony, at Louvaine, where he became a Franciscan, and changed his baptismal name (Christopher) to
Patrick, according to a custom then very frequent. In
1623, after completing his philosophical and theological
studies, he removed to Rome, but in his way through
Paris, happening to become acquainted with Hugh Ward,
he prevailed on the latter to undertake writing the Lives of
the Irish Saints, and when he arrived at Rome he made
large collections from Mss. for the same purpose, which
he sent to Ward. At Rome he continued his studies in
the Irish college of St. Isidore, and both there and afterwards at Louvaine, was appointed to lecture on philosophy.
From Louvaine, where he continued for some years, he
removed to Prague, and was appointed first superior and
lecturer of divinity, and here he remained until the city
was besieged by the elector of Saxony in 1631, when he
was obliged to fly with his companion Matthew Hoar; but
they had scarcely escaped the Saxon forces, when they
were met by some peasants in arms who murdered them,
both, Nov. 7. A third companion, Francis Magenis, also
a Franciscan, who made his escape on this occasion, wrote
an account of Fleming, which is prefixed to his “Collectanea Sacra,
” under the title “Historia Martyrii venerabilis fratris Patricii Fleming!,
” &c.
, an English dramatic writer, the son of the preceding, is said to have been born in Nor
, an English dramatic writer, the
son of the preceding, is said to have been born in Northamptonshire, in 1576, while his father was dean of Peterborough, but as this does not correspond with his age at
the time of his death, it is more probable he was a native
of London, a person of that name and place being admitted pensioner of Bene't college, Oct. 15, 1591, when he
must have been about fifteen, the usual age of admission
in those days. He was made one of the bible clerks in
15i>3, but his further progress in the university cannot be
traced, nor how long he remained in it. On his arrival in
London he became acquainted, and wrote plays jointly
with Beaumont; and Wood says that he assisted Ben
Jouson in a comedy called “The Widow.
” After Beaumont’s death, which happened in he was one of the happy triumvirate of the chief dramatic poets of our nation in the last
foregoing age, among whom there might be said to be a
symmetry of perfection, while each excelled in his peculiar way Ben Jonson in his elaborate pains and knowledge
of authors Shakspeare in his pure vein of wit and natural
poetic height and Fletcher in a courtly elegance and genteel familiarity of style, and withal a wit and invention so
overflowing, that the luxuriant branches thereof were fre^
quently thought convenient to be lopped off by his almost
inseparable companion Francis Beaumont.
” Dryden tells
us, that Beaumont and Fletcher’s plays in his time were
the most pleasing and frequent entertainments, two of
theirs being acted through the year for one of Shakspeare’s
or Jonson’s; and the reason he assigns is, because there
is a certain gaiety in their comedies, and a pathos in their
most serious plays, which suits generally with all men’s humours. The case, however, is now reversed, for Beaumont and Fletcher are not acted above once for fifty times
that the plays of Shakspeare are represented. Their merit,
however, is undoubted; and though it could not avert the
censure of the cynical Rymer, has been acknowledged by
our greatest poets. Their dramas are full of fancy and
variety, interspersed with beautiful passages of genuine
poetry; but there is not the nice discrimination of character, nor the strict adherence to nature, that we justly admire in Shakspeare.
Some of Beaumont and Fletcher’s plays were printed in
4to, during the lives of their authors; and in 1645, twenty
years after Fletcher’s death, there was published a folio
collection of them. The first edition of all their plays,
amounting to upwards of fifty, was published in 1679,
folio. Another edition was published in 1711, in seven
volumes, 8vo. Another in 1751, in ten volumes, 8vo.
Another by Colman, also in ten volumes, in 1778.
is forcible: some of the circumstances perhaps are heightened too much; but it is the fault of this writer to indulge himself in every aggravation that poetry allows,
That Mr. Headley is not blind to the defects of his favourite will farther appear from his remarks on Orpheus
and Eurydice in The Purple Island. “These lines of
Fletcher are a paraphrase, or rather a translation from
Boethius. The whole description is forcible: some of the
circumstances perhaps are heightened too much; but it is
the fault of this writer to indulge himself in every aggravation that poetry allows, and to stretch his prerogative of
4 quidlibet audendi' to the utmost.
”
, a very popular French writer, was born in 1755, at the chateau de Flonan, in the province
, a very popular French writer, was born in 1755, at the chateau de Flonan, in the province of Languedoc. His father, Charles Claris, was a gentleman of small fortune, who, being by no means of an enterprising disposition, died poor. His mother was Gillette de Sulgue, a Castilian Spaniard; and it may be presumed that in this circumstance originated that high esteem and peculiar affection which Florian has since expressed for that sensible, generous, and highspirited nation. This affectionate mother dying in childfred, the care of young Florian devolved wholly on his father, who obtained for him the best masters, and spared no expence nor trouble in the superintendance of his education, and the cultivation of his mind. In his earliest days young Florian displayed that love of his fellow-creatures’which ever after so strongly marked his character; and he evinced even in infancy that suavity of manners and benevolence of disposition which afterwards rendered him so universally esteemed. Even his childhood was marked by acts of benevolence, and many instances of his sensibility and benevolence have been mentioned by his biographers. His occupations and amusements too were always of a nature much superior to those of other children of the same age. He employed much of his time in the cultivation of flowers, and in learning the art of gardening; and agriculture also engaged his attention, and gave him a taste for rural pleasures, to which his countrymen owe Jiis pastorals.
a succession of dramas and novels which placed him in the first rank of popularity as a sentimental writer.
His father sent him to his near kinsman Voltaire for his
education, who afterwards placed him in the rank of page
to the duke de Penthievre. The duke soon distinguished
his talents, bestowed many favours on him, and although,
he at one time gave him a commission in the army, on observing the success of his first publication, the duke determined that he should confine himself to literature, and
furnished him with a library. His first production was his
“Gaiathee,
” which appeared in Theatre,
” containing
“Les deux Billets,
” “Le bon Menage,
” “Le bon Pere,
”
<? La bonne Mere,“and
” Le bon Fils.“Notwithstanding
the success of these, the duke so reproved him for writing
on profane subjects, that he chose his next subject
” Ruth"
from the sacred history, which completely reconciled him
to his patron, and was followed hy a succession of dramas
and novels which placed him in the first rank of popularity
as a sentimental writer.
the college of physicians. He did not begin to publish till 1616, but afterwards became a voluminous writer, being the author of about twenty works, mostly written in Latin,
, or de Fluctibus, an English philosopher, was the son of sir Thomas Fludd, knight, sometime treasurer of war to queen Elizabeth in France and the
Low Countries; and was born at Milgate, in the parish of
Bearsted, in Kent, in 1574. He was admitted of St.
John’s-college, Oxford, in 1591; and having taken both
the degrees in arts, applied himself to physic. He then
spent six years in travelling through France, Spain, Italy,
and Germany: in most of which countries he not only became acquainted with several of the nobility, but read
lectures to them. After his return, being in high repute
for his chemical knowledge, he accumulated the degrees
of bachelor and doctor of physic. This was in 1605;
about which time he practised in London, and became fellow of the college of physicians. He did not begin to
publish till 1616, but afterwards became a voluminous
writer, being the author of about twenty works, mostly
written in Latin, and as dark and mysterious in their language, as in their matter. Some of his productions were
aimed against Kepler and Mersennus; and he had the
honour of replies from both those philosophers. He wrote
two books against Mersennus; the first entitled “Sophias
cum Moria certamen, in quo lapis Lydius, a falso structore
Patre Marino Mersenno Monacho reprobatus, celeberrima
voluminis sui Babylonici in Genesim figmenta accuratæ
examinat.
” Franc. Summum
Bonorum, quod est verum Magiae, Cabalae, Alchymije,
Fratrum Roseug Crucis Verorum, subjectum: in dictarum
scientiarum laudem, in insignis calumniatoris Fr. Mar.
Mersenni dedecus publicatum, per Joachim. Frizium,
”
Sophiae cum Moria certamen
”
and the third against “Summum Bonorum,
” &c. This
answer, called “Examen Fluddanae Philosophise,
” is
dated Feb. 4, 1629, and is printed in the third volume of
Gassendus’s works in folio. In the dedication to Merseniius, this antagonist fairly allows Fludd the merit of extensive learning. His other works were: 1. “Utriusque
Cosmi, majoris et minoris, Technica Historia,
” Oppenheim, Tractatus Apologeticus integritatena societatis de Rosea cruce defendens,
”
Leyden, Monochordon mundi symphoniacum,
eu Replicatio ad Apologiam Joannis Kepleri,
” Francfort,
Anatomise Theatrum triplici effigie designatum,
” ibid. Philosophia Sacra et vere Christiana, seu Meteorologia Cosmica,
” ibid, Mediclna Cathotica, sen, Mysticum artis Medicandi Sacrarium,
” ibid. Integrum Morborum Mysterium,
”
ibid. De Morborum Signis,
” ibid. Clavis Philosophise et Alchyrniae Fluddanse,
” ibid.
Philosophia Mosa'ica,
” Goudae, Pathologia Daemoniaca,
” ibid.
iking resemblance to Peiresk, particularly in some parts of his character represented by the elegant writer of that great man’s life. The generosity of his temper was no
Mr. Folkes was a man of great modesty, affability, and integrity; a friend to merit, and an ornament to literature among others whom he zealously patronized, were Edwards the ornithologist, and Norden the Danish traveller. His library was large and well-chosen, and his cabinet enriched with a collection of English coins, of great extent and value. The manuscripts of his composition, which were not a few, and upon points of great curiosity and importance, not having received from him that revision and completion which he was capable of giving them, were expressly directed by him to be suppressed, an injunction which the public has probably great reason to regret. His knowledge was very extensive, his judgment exact and accurate, and the precision of his ideas appeared from the perspicuity and conciseness of his style on abstruse and difficult topics, and especially in his speeches at the. anniversary elections of the royal society on the delivery of the prize medals, in which he always traced out the rise and progress of the several inventions for which they were assigned as a reward. He had turned his thoughts to the study of antiquity and the polite arts with a philosophical spirit, which he hid contracted by the cultivation of the mathematical sciences in his youth. His talents appeared to greatest advantage upon the subjects of coins, weights, and measures, which had been extremely perplexed by other writers, for wan-t of a moderate share of arithmetic; in the prosecution of which he produced many arguments and proofs, which were the results of his own experiments and observations on common things, not sufficiently attended to, or seen with less distinguishing and penetrating eyes by others. He had a striking resemblance to Peiresk, particularly in some parts of his character represented by the elegant writer of that great man’s life. The generosity of his temper was no less remarkable than the politeness and vivacity of his conversation. His love of a studious and contemplative life, amidst a circle of friends of the same disposition, disinclined him in a very high degree to the business and hurry of a public one; and his only ambition was to distinguish himself by his zeal and activity for the promotion of science and literature. The sale of his library, prints, coins, &c. in 1756, lasted fifty-six days, and produced the sum of 3090l. 5s. A fine monument was erected (in 1792) to his memory in Westminster Abbey, in a window on the south side of the choir, opposite to Thynne’s monument
Beside “Tales,” he was the author of “Fables;” and in both he has merited the title of an original writer, who is, and probably will ever be, single in his kind. In his
Beside “Tales,
” he was the author of “Fables;
” and
in both he has merited the title of an original writer, who
is, and probably will ever be, single in his kind. In his
subjects indeed, he has made great use of the Greek, and
Larin, and French, and Italian authors; but he is truly
original in his manner, which is so easy, so natural, so
simple, so delicate, that it does not seem possible to exceed it. His compositions have much nature, entirely
devoid of affectation: his wit seems unstudied, and so
much pleasantry is hardly to be met with. He never
grows languid or heavy, but is always new and surprising*.
His Tales are said to have been a great while the cause of
his exclusion from the French academy; but at last, upon
his writing a letter to a prelate of that society, wherein he
declared his dissatisfaction for the liberties he had taken,
and his resolution that his pen should never relapse, he was
received into that body with marks of esteem. His first
Fables are more valued than his last he seems to have
thrown the best of his fire and force into them and both
the one and the other have more sobriety and correctness
than his Tales.
nd over with such admiration, that he could net forbear whispering to Racine, “This Baruch is a fine writer do you know any thing of him” and for some days after, if he
It has been observed, that the finest writers, and the
deepest thinkers, have frequently been but indifferent
companions. This was Fontaine’s case: for, having once
been invited to dine at the house of a person of distinction,
for the more elegant entertainment of the guests, though
he ate very heartily, yet not a word could be got from
him; and when, rising soon after from the table, on pretence of going to the Academy, he was told he would be
too soon, “Oh then,
” said he, “I'll take the longest
way.
” Kacine once carried him to the Tenebrae, which is
a service in the church of Rome, in representation of our
Saviour’s agony in the garden; and, perceiving it too long
for him, put a Bible into his hands. Fontaine, happening
to open it at the prayer of the Jews in Baruch, read it
over and over with such admiration, that he could net forbear whispering to Racine, “This Baruch is a fine writer
do you know any thing of him
” and for some days
after, if he chanced to meet with any person of letters,
when the usual compliments were over, his question was,
“Have you ever read Barnch there’s a lirst-rate genius
”
and this so loud, that every body might hear him. This is
of a piece with another anecdote. Being one day with
Boileau, Racine, and other eminent men, among whom
were some ecclesiastics, St. Austin was talked of for a long
time, and with the highest commendations. Fontaine
listened with his natural air; and at last, after a profound
silence, asked one of the ecclesiastics with the most unaffected seriousness, “Whether he thought St. Austin had
more wit than Rabelais?
” The doctor, eyeing Fontaine
from head to foot, answered only by observing, that “he
had put on one of his stockings the wrong side outward;
”
which happened to be the case.
, a voluminous French writer, the son of a scrivener at Paris, was born in 1625, and received
, a voluminous French writer,
the son of a scrivener at Paris, was born in 1625, and received at the age of twenty into the: society of the celebrated solitaries of Port Royal, in a subordinate office, but
in the course of time obtained the^ chief superintendance
of the young men who were sent there for education; He
employed his leisure hours in severe literary labours, such
as transcribing the works of several of these solitaries. He
followed Nicole and Arnauld, to whom he had been a kind
of secretary, into their different places of retreat; in 1664
he was shut up in the Bastille with Sacy, and came out of
it with him in 16f>8. After the death of Sacy, in 1684, he
frequently changed his retreat, but established himself
finally at Mel un, where he died in 1709, at the age of
eighty-four. His works are principally, 1. “Lives of the
Saints of the Old Testament,
” 4 torn. 8vo. 2. “Lives of
the Saints
” in general, the same number of volumes, or
1 in folio. 3. “Les figures de Bible,
” or a history of tha
Bible, in short chapters, which has often been printed
under the title of “Bible de Royaumont,
” and there is
an English edition in 4to, with above Memoirs of the Solitaries of Port Royal,
” 2 vols. 12mo. 5.
“Translation of St.' ChrysostonVs Homilies on St. Paul’s
Epistles,
” 7 vols. 8vo. His versions are written with fidelity, but not always with vigour. He was far inferior to
Arnauld and Nicole, whom he admired; but his piety was
worthy of Port Royal. He was distinguished for innocence of manners, laborious, edifying simplicity of life,
sincere modesty, unparalleled disinterestedness, and a
steadiness of faith superior to all trials. A man of so many
virtues deserves to be recorded, though not among the
first class of authors. It remains to be added that his
translation of Chrysostom involved him in trouble. Father
Daniel, a Jesuit, accused him of Nestorianism, and denounced, him in a letter to the Sorbonne. Fontaine made
a very humble and respectful retraction, and substituted
several new pages in those parts which had been found reprehensible; but, as this did not prevent M. de Harlai
from condemning his translation, he undertook its defence
in a work where he asserts, that he has faithfully translated St. Chrysostom, and not fallen into heresies.
, esq. called the English Aristophanes, a distinguished writer and actor in comedy, was of a good family, and born at Truro,
, esq. called the English Aristophanes,
a distinguished writer and actor in comedy, was of a good
family, and born at Truro, in Cornwall, about 1720. His
father, John Foote, esq. enjoyed the offices of commissioner of the prize-office and line contract, and was finally
member of parliament for Tiverton, in Devonshire. His
mother, by an unhappy quarrel between her two brothers,
sir John Dinely Goodere, bart. and sir Samuel Goodere,
captain of the Ruby man of war, became heiress of the
Goodere family. The quarrel alluded to, after subsisting
for some years, ended in the murder of sir John by his
brother, and the subsequent execution of the latter, in
1741. Foote received his education at Worcester-college,
Oxford; and was thence removed to the Temple, as designed for the law. The dry ness and gravity of this study,
however, not suiting the vivacity and volatility of Foote' s
spirit, and his fortune, whatever it was, being soon dissipated, he left the law, and had recourse to the stage. He
appeared first in Othello; but whether he discovered that
his forte did not lie in tragedy, or that the language of
other writers would not serve sufficiently to display his humour, he soon struck out into a new and untrodden path,
by taking upon himself the double character of author and
performer. In this double capacity, in 1747, he opened
the little theatre in the Haymarket with a sort of drama of
his own, called “The Diversions of the Morning,
” This
piece was nothing more than the introduction of well-known
characters in real life; whose manner of conversing and
expressing themselves he had a most amazing talent at
imitating, copying not only the manner and voice, but in
some degree, even the persons of those he ridiculed.
, an eminent political and financial writer of France, was born at Mans, Oct. 2, 1722. His father, Francis,
, an eminent political and financial writer of France,
was born at Mans, Oct. 2, 1722. His father, Francis,
Louis Veron Duverger, was a merchant of that city. Having finished his education at the college of Beauvais, i,Ek
Paris, he left it in the sixteenth year of his age, to followthe tarn my trade, which had long been carried on by his
family; his great grandfather having established at Mans a,
manufactory of tammies, which, from that circumstance, in
Spain were called Verones. In 1741 he was sent by his
father to Spain and Italy, whence he returned to Mans in
1743. His grandfather by the mother’s side, having soon
after retired from business, he was thereby enabled to trade
on his own account; but declining, from motives of delicacy, to carry on at Mans the same trade as his father, he
Avent to Nantes, where his uncle was established as a shipowner, to obtain a knowledge of the mercantile concerns
and transactions of that city. Having spent several years
at Nantes, and collected much valuable information on
maritime and colonial trade, he entered in 1752 upon a
speculation, which induced him to go to Paris. Confined
to a small circle of friends and acquaintance, he lived there
in great privacy, yet presented to government several memoirs, which experiencing a very cool reception, he resolved to write in future, not for administration, but the
public. He published accordingly in 1753, his “ThtJorie et pratique du Commerce et de la Marine,
” a free
translation from the Spanish of Dr. Geron. de Votariz,
which was soon followed by the “Considerations sur les
Finances d'Espagne relativement a eel les de France,
” a
work in which he displayed such intimate acquaintance
with the Spanish system of finance, that the Spanish ambassador at the court of Versailles proposed him to marshal
cle Noailles, as consul-general of Spain; but the former
being soon after recalled by his court, the appointment did
not take place. About the same time he published, in
1754, his “Essai sur la partie politique du commerce de
terre et de mer, de Pagriculture et des finances,
” which
within three weeks passed through two editions; the third
edition was published in 1766, and the fourth in 1796,
considerably improved and enlarged. From his profound
knowledge in matters relative to money and coinage, he
was appointed in 1755, to examine into the enormous
abuses which had crept into the administration <yf the
French mint. He immediately proposed a new coinage,
but his plan was not carried into execution until 1771; he
was, however, in the meanwhile, appointed inspectorgeneral of the mint, a new office expressly established for
him.
Having obtained free admittance to the library of the
family of Noailles, rich in manuscripts relative to the administration of the finances of France, he conceived the
idea of composing his “Recherches et considerations sur
les finances de France depuis 1595 jusqu'a 1721,
” printed
at Basle, Lettre d'un
Banquier a son correspondent cle province;
” chiefly intended to give a favourable account of the minister’s operation. In 1760 he pointed out to the Duke de Choiseuil
the perilous situation of France, and suggested the plan of
a treaty of peace, calculated to tempt the ambition of
Great Britain, and at the same time to save resources for
France. This plan met with so much applause, that Don
de Fuentes, at that lime Spanish ambassador at Paris, who
was admitted to the conferences, offered an armed neutrality on the part of his court to tacilitate its execution.
Forbonnois was charged to draw up the necessary acts and
plans, and to elucidate a great variety of points respecting
the fisheries, the means of enlarging them, the sacrifices
to be made to England, &c. nay, he was offered the appointment of plenipotentiary to conclude the treaty; but
having executed his charge, and demanded a conference,
he received no answer. Being entrusted with the secrets
of the state, he began to entertain strong apprehensions
for his personal safety, and took refuge in a glass-manufactory in the mountains of Burgundy, in which he was
concerned. He returned, however, afterwards to Paris,
and in order to render both the minister and the financiers
perfectly easy on his account, he purchased the place of a
counsellor or member of the parliament of Metz.
ote nothing for the stage after 1639, and it is probable that he did not long survive that period. A writer in the “Censura Literaria,” has attributed to him an excellent
, an early English dramatic author, the
second son of Thomas Ford, esq. a gentleman in the commission of the peace, was a native of Ilsington in Devonshire, where he was born in 158G, probably in the beginning of April, as he was baptised on the 17th of that month
at Ilsington. It does not appear where he was educated,
but on Nov. 16, 1602, he entered as a member of the
Middle Temple, for the purpose of studying law. While
there he published, in 1606, “Fame’s Memoriall, on the
earle of Devonshire deceased; with his honourable life,
peaceful end, and solemne funerall,
” a small quarto of
twenty-eight leaves. This poem, considered as the production of a youth, is creditable to the talents of Ford, as
it exhibits a freedom of thought and command of language,
of which there are few contemporaneous examples. At
this time Ford was in his twenty-first year, and deeply
engaged, but unfortunate, in an affair of the heart; and
being disappointed also by the death of lord Mountjoy,
the liberal friend of the poet Daniel, to whom he was
about to look up as a patron, he determined to seek relief
in travel. Whether he actually went abroad, or finding a
nymph less cruel, and an avenue to fame without individual patronage, remained in England, is matter of conjecture: but we next hear of him on the stage. With a
forbearance, however, unusual with those who have once
adventured before the public, Ford abstained from the
press from 1606 to 1629, when he printed his tragicomedy of the “Lover’s Melancholy.
” But this was not
his first attempt on the stage, as his play entitled “A bad
beginning makes a good ending,
” was acted at court as
early as A Letter to William Gifford, esq.
” Censura Literaria,
” has attributed to him an
excellent little manual, entitled “A Line of Life, pointing
at the immortalitie of a vertuous name,
”
As a dramatic writer, his merit has been thus appreciated by one admirably qualified
As a dramatic writer, his merit has been thus appreciated
by one admirably qualified for the task. Reversing the
observation of Dry den on Shakspeare, it may be said of
Ford, that “he wrote laboriously, not luckily;
” always
elegant, often elevated, never sublime, he accomplished
by patient and careful industry what Shakspeare and
Fletcher produced by the spontaneous exuberance of native genius. He seems to have acquired early in life, and
to have retained to the last, a softness of versification peculiar to himself. Without the majestic march of verse
which distinguishes the poetry of Massinger, and with
none of that playful gaiety which characterizes the dialogue of Fletcher, he is still easy and harmonious. There
is, however, a monotony in his poetry, which those who
have perused his scenes long together must have inevitably
perceived. His dialogue is declamatory and formal, and
wants that quick chace of replication and rejoinder so necessary to effect in representation. His genius was mostly
inclined to tragedy. In his plots he is far from judicious;
they are for the most part too full of the horrible, and he
seems to have had recourse to an accumulation of terrific incidents to obtain that effect which he despairs of producing
by pathos of language. Another defect in Ford’s poetry,
proceeding from the same source, is the alloy of pedantry
which pervades his scenes, at one time exhibited in the
composition of uncooth phrases, at another in perplexity
of language; and he frequently labours with a remote idea,
which, rather than throw it away, he obtrudes upon his
reader involved in inextricable obscurity. For this opinion
of Ford’s merits, as well as for the particulars of his life,
we are indebted to an elaborate and comprehensive article
in the “Quarterly Review,
” occasioned by an edition of
“The Dramatic Works of John Ford; with an introduction and explanatory notes, by Henry Weber, esq.
”
, a Prussian writer of various talents, originally of a French refugee family, was
, a Prussian writer of
various talents, originally of a French refugee family, was
born at Berlin in 17 1L He was educated at the royal
French college for the church, and being ordained in his
twentieth year, he was chosen one of the officiating ministers of the French congregation in Berlin. In 1737 he
was appointed professor of eloquence in the French college, and in 1739 succeeded to the philosophical chair of
the same college. On the restoration of the royal academy of sciences and belles lettres at Berlin in 1744, M.
Formey was made secretary to the philosophical class, and
four years afterwards sole and perpetual secretary of -the
academy. His talents and fame procured him admission
into many foreign learned bodies, as those of London,
Petersburg, Haarlem, Mantua, Bologna, and many others
in Germany, and he was personally acquainted with
several of the most eminent and illustrious characters throughout Europe. Besides his academical employments, he rttas
agent or secretary to the dowager princess of Wirtemberg:
he filled several offices in the French colony at Berlin, and
at length became a privy counsellor in its superior directory. He was twice married, and by his second wife had
many children, seven of whom survived him. He died in
the month of March 1797, at the great age of eighty-five
years and eight months. In Thiebault’s “Anecdotes of
Frederic II.
” there are some of Formey, by which it would
appear that he was apt to be very unguarded, and almost
licentious in conversation, but often procured his pardon
by the ingenuity of his excuses. His publications were
extremely numerous, but we have nowhere seen a complete list. The following, however, probably includes the
principal: 1. “Articles des Pacte Conventa, dresses et
conclus entre les etats de Pologne et le roi Frederic-Auguste,
” Le fidele fortifie
par la grace,
” a sermon, Berlin, Ducatianaj
ou remarques de feu M. leDuchat, &c.
” Amst. 2 vols. 8vo.
4. “Bibliotheque Germanique;
” in this journal he wrote
from vol. XXVII. The lives of Duchat, Beausobre, Baratier, &c. are from his pen. 5. “Mercure et Minerve%
ou choix de nouvelles, &c.
” another periodical work, begun in Dec. Amusemens litteraires, moraux, et politiques,
” a continuation of the preceding, as far as July of the last mentioned year. 7. “Correspondence entre deux amis sur la
succession de Juliers et de Bergues,
” Hague, Sermons sur le mystere de la naissance de Jesus Christ,
”
from the German of lleinbeck, Berlin, Sermons sur divers textes de Tecriture sainte,
” ibid. Remarques historiques sur les medaille* et monnoies,
”
ibid. Journal de Berlin,
” La Belle Wolfienne,
” Memoires pour servir a Tbistoire de
Pologae,
” Hague, La yie de Jean-Philippe Baratier,
” Berlin,
ifo. 15. ‘ Le iriomphe de i’evidence, ou
refnta.tion du Pyrrhonisme ancien et moderne,“2 vols. 8vo, an
abridgment from Crousaz. 16.
” Traite sur la reformation de la justice en Rrusse,“to which is added a treatise
on dreams. 17.
” Eloges des academicians de Berlin et
de divers autres savans,“Berlin, 1757, 2 vols. 12mo. 18.
” Principes du droit naturel et des gens,“Amst. 3 vols.
12mo, from Wolff’s Latin work. 19.
” Conseils pour former une bibliotheque,“Francfort, 1746, of which the
sixth edition appeared in 1775, 8vo. 20.
” Le systeme
du vrai bonheur,“1761. 21.
” Melanges philosophiques,“Leyden, 1754, 2 vols. 12mo, translated afterwards into
English. 22.
” La comtesse Suedoise,“Berlin, 1754, 8vo,
from the German of Gellert. 23.
” Examen philosophique
de la liaison reelle entre les sciences et les mceurs,“1755,
8vo. 24.
” L'Abeille du Parnasse,“1750 1754, 10 vois.
8vo. 25.
” Le Philosophe Paien, ou pensees de Pline,
avec un commentaire literal et moral,“Leyden, 3 vols.
12mo. 26.
” Principes elementaires des Belles Lettres,“Berlin, 1759. 27.
” Diversite’s historiques,“1764, 8vo f
from ^lian, with notes. 28.
” Abrege de toutes les
sciences a Tusage des adolescens,“Berlin, 1764—1778,
8 vols. 12mo. 9-9.
” Introduction generate aux sciences,
avec des conseils pour former un bibliotheque choisie,“Amst. 1764. 30.
” Discours de Gellert sur la morale,“Berlin, 1766. 31.
” Traduction Franchise de l'Histoire
des Protestans,“by Hansen, Halle, 1767. Some of these
have been published in English, particularly his small work
on the belles lettres, and another not noticed above,
” Histoire abrege*e de la Philosophic," which we can remember a
very popular book in this country. Formey, indeed, if
not one of the most profound, was one of the most pleasing of writers, and all his works were calculated by clearness and precision of style for popular reading. He deserves credit also as one of the defenders of revelation
against Diderot and Rousseau; and for this reason Voltaire endeavoured to prejudice the king of Prussia against
him. Besides the extensive labours we have enumerated,
and the list is by no means complete, Formey wrote many
articles in the French Encyclopaedia, and in that of Yverdun. His correspondence with literary men was most extensive, and almost all the booksellers on the continent
occasionally engaged his services as an editor.
omiums which his countrymen have bestowed on him, not only as a profound, but a pleasing and elegant writer. He published, 1. “The translation of Ramazzini,” before-mentioned.
Fourcroy’s works rank among the most considerable
which France has produced in chemistry, and must be allowed in a great measure to confirm the high encomiums
which his countrymen have bestowed on him, not only as
a profound, but a pleasing and elegant writer. He published, 1. “The translation of Ramazzini,
” before-mentioned. 2. “Lemons elementaires d'histoire naturelle et
de chimie,
” Memoires et observations pour servir de suite aux elemens de
chimie,
” Principes de chimie a l‘usage de
l’ecole veterinaire,
” 2 vols. 12mo. 5. “L‘art de connoitre
et d’employer les medicamens dans les maladies qui attaquent le corps humain,
” Entomologia Parisiensis
” by Geoffrey, an improved edition,
Methode de nomenclature chimique proposer par Morveau, &c.
” with a new system of
chemical characters, Essai sur le phlogistique, et sur la constitution des acides,
” from the English of Kirwan, with notes by Morveau, Lavoisier, Bertholet, and Fourcroy, 1788, 8vo. 9. “Analyse chimique
de l‘eau sulphureuse d’Enghein, pour servir a l'histoire
des eaux sulphureuse en general,
” by Fourcroy & La
Porte, Annales de Chimie,
” by Fourcroy and all the French chemists, published periodically
from 1789 to 1794, 18 vols. 8vo. 11. “La
eclairée par les sciences physiques,
” 1791, 1792, 12 vols.
12. “Philosophic chimique,
” Magasin encyclopeclique,
” and the “Journal de
l'ecole polytechnique,
” and drew up several reports for
the national convention, which were published in the Moniteur, &c. His last publications were, 13.“Tableaux pour
servir de resume aux Ie9ons de chimie faites a l'ecole de
medicine de Paris pendant 1799 et 1800. 14.
” Systeme
des connoissances chimiques, et de leurs applications aux
phenomenes de la nature et de Part," 1800, 10 vols. 8vo,
and 5 vols. 4to. To these extensive labours may be added
the chemical articles in the Encyclopaedia. Fourcroy left
a very valuable library, which was sold by auction at Paris,
in 1810, and of which Messrs. Tilliard, the booksellers,
published a well-arranged catalogue. Several of his works
have been translated into English.
t John Fox is not one of the most faithful and authentic of all historians.” And in the words of the writer from whom we borrow this assertion, we add, although with some
The effect of Fox’s work, in promoting, or rather confirming the principles of the reformation, to which we owe
all that distinguishes us as a nation, is acknowledged with
universal conviction. It is proved even by the antipathy
of his enemies, who would not have taken such pains to
expose his errors, and inveigh against the work 2t large,
if they had not felt that it created in the public mind an
abhorrence of the persecuting spirit of popery, which has
suffered little diminution, even to the present day. All
the endeavours of the popish writers, however, from Harpsfield to Milner, “have not proved, and it never will be
proved, that John Fox is not one of the most faithful and
authentic of all historians.
” And in the words of the
writer from whom we borrow this assertion, we add, although with some reluctance from respect to the gentleman’s name, “We know too much of the strength of Fox’s
book, and of the weakness of those of his adversaries, to be
farther moved by Dr. John Milner’s censures, than to charge
them with falsehood. All the many researches and discoveries of later times, in regard to historical documents,
have only contributed to place the general fidelity and truth
of Fox’s’ melancholy narrative on a rock which cannot be
shaken.
”
, an eminent political writer, was a native of Rovigno in Italy, and spent several years at
, an eminent political writer,
was a native of Rovigno in Italy, and spent several years
at Rome, where he was greatly esteemed by Sessa, ambassador of Philip II. king of Spain. He was employed in
civil as well as military affairs, and acquitted himself always
with great applause; yet he had like to have been ruined,
and to have even lost his Hfe, by his enemies. This
obliged him to withdraw to Naples; and still having friends
to protect his innocence, he proved it at length to the
court of Spain, who ordered count de Benevento, viceroy
of Naples, to employ him, and Frachetta lived in a very
honourable manner at Naples, where a handsome pension
was allowed him. He gained great reputation by his political works, the most considerable of which is that entitled
“II Seininario de Governi di Stato, et di Guerra.
” In
this work he has collected, under an hundred and ten
chapters, about eight thousand military and state maxims,
extracted from the best authors; and has added to each
chapter a discourse, which serves as a commentary to it.
This work was printed twice, at least, by the author, reprinted at Venice in 1647, and at Genoa in 1648, 4to;
and there was added to it, “II Principe,
” by the same
writer, which was published in 1597. The dedication
informs us, that Frachetta was prompted to write this book
from a conversation he had with the duke of Sessa; in
which the latter observed, among other particulars, that
he thought it as important as it was a difficult task, to inform princes truly pf such transactions as happen in their
dominions. His other compositions are, “Discorso della
Ragione di Stato: Discorso della Ragione di Guerra:
Esposizione di tutta l'Opera di Lucrezio.
” He died at
Naples in the beginning of the seventeenth century, but
at what age is unknown.
, a French writer, was born of a noble family at Paris in 1666. His first studies
, a French writer, was
born of a noble family at Paris in 1666. His first studies
were under the Jesuits; and father La Baune had the
forming of his taste to polite literature. He was also a
v disciple of the fathers Rapin, Jouvenci, La Rue, and
Commire; and the affection he had for them induced him
to admit himself of their order in 1683. After his noviciate, and when he had finished his course of philosophy
at Paris, he was sent to Caen to teach the belles lettres,
where he contracted a friendship with Huet and Segrais,
and much improved himself under their instructions. The
former advised him to spend one part of the day upon the
Greek authors, and another upon the Latin: by pursuing
which method, he became an adept in both languages.
Four years being passed here, he was recalled to Paris,
where he spent other four years in the study of divinity.
At the end of this course, he was shortly to take upon
him the occupation of either preaching, or teaching; but
finding in himself no inclination for either, he quitted his
order in 1694, though he still retained his usual attachment to it. Being now at liberty to indulge his own
wishes, he devoted himself solely to improve and polish
his understanding. He soon after assisted the abbé Bignon, under whose direction the “Journal des Scavans
”
was conducted; and he had all the qualifications necessary
for such a work, a profound knowledge of antiquity, a
skill not only in the Greek and Latin, but also Italian,
Spanish, and English tongues, a soundjudgment, an exact taste, and a very impartial and candid temper. He
afterwacds formed a plan of translating the works of Plato;
thinking, very justly, that the versions of Ficinus and Serranus had left room enough for correction and amendments.
He had begun this work, but was obliged to discontinue it
by a misfortune which befel him in 1709. He had borrowed, as we are told, of his friend father Hardouin, a
manuscript commentary of his upon the New Testament,
in order to make some extracts from it; and was busy at
work upon it one summer evening, with the window half
open, and himself inconsiderately almost undressed. The
cold air had so unhappy an efiect in relaxing the muscles
of his neck, that he could never afterwards hold his head
in its natural situation. The winter increased his malady;
and he was troubled with involuntary convulsive motions
of the head, and with pains which often hindered him from
sleeping; yet he lived nineteen years after; and though
he could not undertake any literary work, constantly received visits from the learned, and conversed with them
not without pleasure. He died suddenly of an apoplexy,
1728, in his sixty-second year. He had been made a
member of the academy of inscriptions in 1705, and of the
French academy in 1708.
His works consist of Latin poems, and a great number
of very excellent dissertations in the Memoirs of the
French academy . His poems were published at Paris in
1729, in 12mo, with the poems of Huet, under the care
of the abbé d'Olivet, who prefixed an eulogy of Fraguier;
and at the end of them are three Latin dissertations concerning Socrates, which is all that remains of the Prolegomena he had prepared for his intended translation of
Plato. These dissertations, with many others upon curious and interesting subjects, are printed in the Memoirs
above-mentioned.
ssation of hostilities, if not to an honourable peace. At this time Francklin is said to have been a writer in the Critical Review, which indeed is acknowledged in an article
In 1753, he published a poem called “Translation,
” in
which he announced his intention of giving a translation of
“Sophocles.
” In January The World
” being finished, he engaged to publish a similar one, under the title of “The Centinel,
” but
after extending it to twenty-seven numbers, he was obliged
to drop it for want of encouragement, The next year he
published “A Fast Sermon
” preached at Queen-street
chapel, of which he was minister, and at St. Paul’s Coveut-garden, of which he was lecturer; and he afterwards
published a few sermons on occasional topics, or for charities. In 1759 appeared his translation of “Sophocles,
”
2 vols. 4to, which was allowed to be a bold and happy transfusion into the English language of the terrible simplicity
of the Greek tragedian. This was followed by a “Dissertation on ancient Tragedy,
” in which he mentioned
Arthur Murphy by name, and in terms not the most courtly.
Murphy, a man equally, or perhaps more irritable, replied
in a poetical “Epistle addressed to Dr. Johnson,
” who
calmly permitted the combatants to settle their disputes in
their own way, which, we are told, amounted to a cessation of hostilities, if not to an honourable peace. At this
time Francklin is said to have been a writer in the Critical
Review, which indeed is acknowledged in an article in that
review, and might perhaps be deduced from, internal evidence, as, besides his intimacy with Smollet, his works
are uniformly mentioned with very high praise. In 1757
he had been preferred by Trinity-college to the livings of
Ware and Thundrich, in Hertfordshire, and although his
mind was more intent on the stage than the pulpit, he
published in 1765 a volume of “Sermons on the relative
duties,
” which was well received by the publick. Next
year he produced at Drury-lane theatre, the tragedy of
“The Earl of Warwick,
” taken, without any acknowledgement, from the French of La Harpe. In Nov. 1767, he
was enrolled in the list of his majesty’s chaplains. In
1768 he published apiece of humour, without his name,
entitled “A Letter to a Bishop concerning Lectureships,
”
exposing the paltry shifts of the candidates for this office
at their elections; and next year he wrote “An Ode on
the Institution of the Royal Academy.
” In March of the
same year, he translated Voltaire’s “Orestes
” for the
stage. In July Electra,
” “Matilda,
” and “The Contract,
” a farce. About which he published in 1780, in 2 vols. 4to. He
was also concerned with Smollet, in a translation of Voltaire’s works, but, it is said, contributed little more than
his name to the title-pages. There is a tragedy of his still
in ms. entitled
” Mary Queen of Scots.“Dr. Francklin
died at his house in Great Queen-street, March 15, 1784.
He was unquestionably a man of learning and abilities,
but from peculiarities of temper, and literary jealousy,
seems not to have been much esteemed by his contemporaries. After his death 3 volumes of his
” Sermons" were
published for the benefit of his widow and family. Mrs.
Francklin died in May 1796. She was the daughter of
Mr. Venables, a wine-merchant.
, a French abbé and very useful writer, was born at Arinthod, in Franche-comte, Nov. 2, 1698, and for
, a French abbé and very useful writer, was born at Arinthod, in Franche-comte, Nov.
2, 1698, and for some time belonged to the chevaliers of
St. Lazarus, but quitting that society, came to Paris and
engaged in teaching. He afterwards wrote several works,
in a style perhaps not very elegant, but which were admired either for their intrinsic usefulness, or as antidotes
to the pernicious doctrines of the French philosophers and
deists, who, conscious of his superiority in argument, affected to regard him as a man of weak understanding, and
a bigot; reproaches that are generally thrown upon the
advocates of revealed religion in other countries as well as
in France. The abbé François, however, appears from his
works to have been a man of learning, and an able disputant. He died at Paris, far advanced in years, Feb.
24, 1782, escaping the miseries which those against whom
he wrote, were about to bring on their country. His principal works are, I. “Geographic,
” 12tno, an excellent
manual on that subject, often reprinted, and known by
the name of “Crozat,
” the lady to whom he dedicated it,
and for whose use he first composed it. 2. “Prenves de
la religion de Jesus Christ,
” 4 vols. 12mo. 3. “Defense
de la Religion,
” 4 vols. 12mo. 4. “Examen du Catechisme de i'honnete homme,
” 12mo. 5. “Examen des
faits qui servent de fondement a la religipn Chretienne,
”
Observation sur la philosophic
de i'histoire,
” 8vo. He left also some manuscripts, in refutation of the “.Philosophical Dictionary,
” the “System
of Nature,
” and other works which emanated from the
philosophists of France.
which proved very profitable, and afforded him an opportunity of making himself known as a political writer, by his inserting several attempts of that kind in it. He also
About 1728 or 1729, Franklin setup a newspaper, the
second in Philadelphia, which proved very profitable, and
afforded him an opportunity of making himself known as a
political writer, by his inserting several attempts of that
kind in it. He also set up a shop for the sale of books and
articles of stationary, and in 1730 he married a lady, now
a widow, whom he had courted before he went to England, when she was a virgin. He afterwards began to
have some leisure, both for reading books, and writing
them, of which he gave many specimens from time to
time. In 1732, he began to publish “Poor Richard’s Almanack,
” which was continued for many years. It was
always remarkable for the numerous and valuable concise
maxims which it contained, for the Œconomy of human
life; all tending to industry and frugality; and which were
comprized in a well-known address, entitled “The Way to
Wealth.
” This has been transiated into various languages,
and inserted in almost every magazine and newspaper in
Great Britain or America. It has also been printed on a
large sheet, proper to be framed, and hung up in conspicuous places in all houses, as it very well deserves to
be. Mr. Franklin became gradually more known for his
political talents. In 1736, he was appointed clerk to
the general assembly of Pennsylvania; and was re-elected
by succeeding assemblies for several years, till he was
chosen a representative for the city of Philadelphia; and
in 1737 he was appointed post-master of that city. In
1738, he formed the first fire-company there, to extinguish and prevent fires and the burning of houses; an example which was soon followed by other persons, and other
places. And soon after, he suggested the plan of an association for insuring houses and ships from losses by fire,
which was adopted; and the association continues to this
day. In 1744, during a war between France and Great
Britain, some French and Indians made inroads upon the
frontier inhabitants of the province, who were unprovided
for such an attack; the situation of the province was at
this time truly alarming, being destitute of every means
of defence. At this crisis Franklin stepped forth, and proposed to a meeting of the citizens of Philadelphia, a plan,
of a voluntary association for the defence of the province.
This was approved of, and signed by 1200 persons immediately. Copies of it were circulated through the province;
and in a short time the number of signatures amounted to
10,000. Franklin was chosen colonel of the Philadelphia
regiment; but he did not think proper to accept of the
honour.
distinguishing characteristics of Franklin’s mind, as they have been appreciated by a very judicious writer, seem to have been a clearness of apprehension, and a steady
As a philosopher the distinguishing characteristics of Franklin’s mind, as they have been appreciated by a very judicious writer, seem to have been a clearness of apprehension, and a steady undeviating common sense. We do not rind him taking unrestrained excursions into the more difficult labyrinths of philosophical inquiry, or indulging in conjecture and hypothesis. He is in the constant habit of referring to acknowledged facts and observations, and suggests the trials by which his speculative opinions may be put to the teat. He does not seek for extraordinary occasions of trying his philosophical acumen, nor sjts down with the preconceived intention of constructing a philosophical system. It is in the course of his familiar correspondence that he proposes his new explanations of phenomena, and brings into notice his new discoveries. A question put by a friend, or an accidental occurrence of the day, generally form the ground-work of these speculations. They are taken up by the author as the ordinary topics of friendly intercourse; they appear to cost him no Jahour; and are discussed without any parade. If an ingenious solution of a phenomenon is suggested, it is introduced with as much simplicity as if it were the most natural and obvious explanation that could be offered; and the author seems to value himself so little upon it, that the reader is in danger of estimating it below its real importance: If a mere hypothesis be proposed, the author himself is the first to point out its insufficiency, and abandons it with more facility than he had constructed it. Even the letters on electricity, which are by far the most finished of Franklin’s performances, are distinctly characterized by all these peculiarities. They are at first suggested by the accidental present of an electrical tube from a correspondent in London; Franklin and his friends are insensibly engaged in a course of electrical experiments; the results are from time to time communicated to the London correspondent; several important discoveries are made; and at length there arises a finished and ingenious theory of electricity. On this account the writings of Franklin possess a peculiar charm. They excite a favourable disposition and a friendly interest in the reader. The author never betrays any exertion, nor displays an. unwarrantable partiality for his own speculations; he assumes no superiority over his readers, nor seeks to elevate the importance of his conceptions, by the adventitious aid of declamation, or rhetorical flourishes. He exhibits no false zeal, no enthusiasm, but calmly and modestly seeks after truth; and if he fails to find it, has no desire to impose a counterfeit in its stead. He makes a familiar amusement of philosophical speculation; and while the reader thinks he has before him an ordinary and unstudied Jetter to a friend, he is insensibly engaged in deep disqu*sitions of science, and made acquainted with the ingenious solutions of difficult phenomena. Of Franklin’s more private and personal character, we have few particulars; but it is to be regretted that in his religious principles he was early, and all his life, one of the class of free-thinkers.
Frederic, like Cesar, united the talents of a writer with those of a warrior. He wrote in French, and was a tolerable
Frederic, like Cesar, united the talents of a writer with
those of a warrior. He wrote in French, and was a tolerable poet; but his abilities are more displayed in history.
His poem on the art of war is, however, valuable, both
from his deep knowledge of the subject, ^and the traits of
genius it displays. His works compose altogether nineteen volumes, 8vo. His poetical compositions, which, excepting his poem on the Art of War, consist chiefly of
odes and epistles, passed through many editions under the
title of “Oeuvres melees du Philosophe de Sans Souci.
”
But all the works published in his life, both in prose and
verse, were collected in four vols. 8vo, in 1790, under the
title of “Oeuvres primitives de Frederic II. Roi de Prusse,
ou collection desouvragesqu'il publia pendant son regne.
”
Of this publication, the first volume contains his “AntiMachiuvel; military instructions for the general of his
army; and his correspondence with M. de la Motte Fouquei.
” TJie second, his “Memoirs of the House of Branden burgh.
” In the third volume are his poems; and in
the fourth, a variety of pieces in prose, philosophical,
moral, historical, critical, and literary; particularly “Reflections on the military talents and character of Charles
XII. king of Sweden; a discourse on war; letters on education, and on the love of our country; and a discourse on
German literature.
” His posthumous works hud been published stiil earlier. They appeare4 at Berlin in 1788, in
15 vols. 8vo. The two first of these contain the “History
of his own Time, to the year 1745.
” The third and fourth,
his “History of the Seven Years’ War.
” The fifth contains “Memoirs from the Peace of Hubertsbourg in 1763,
to the Partition of Poland in 1775.
” The sixth is filled
with miscellaneous matter, particularly “Considerations
on the present state of the political powers of Europe,
”
and “an Essay on Forms of Government, and on the
duties of Sovereigns.
” The seventh and eighth volumes
contain poetical pieces, and some letters to Jordan and
Voltaire. The remaining seven volumes continue his correspondence, including letters to and from Fontenelle,
Rollin, Voltaire, D‘Argens, D’Alembert, Condorcet, and
others. Of these productions many are valuable, more
especially his “History of his own Times,
” where, however, he is more impartial in his accounts of his campaigns,
than in assigning the motives for his wars, or estimating
the merits of his antagonists.
, an elegant Portuguese writer in prose and verse, was born in 1597, at Beja in Portugal, and
, an elegant Portuguese writer in prose and verse, was born in 1597, at Beja
in Portugal, and became abbé of St. Mary de Chans. He
appeared at first with some distinction at the court of
Spain, but his attachment to the house of Braganza impeded his advancement. In 1640, when John IV. was
proclaimed king of Portugal, he went to his court, and
was well received. Yet it was found difficult to advance
him, for he was of too light and careless a character to be
employed in diplomatic business; and though the king
would have gone so far as to make him bishop of Visieu,
this dignity he had the wisdom to refuse, well-knowing
that the pope who did not acknowledge his master as king,
would never confirm his appointment as bishop. He did
not choose, he said, merely to personate a bishop, like an
actor on a stage. He died at Lisbon in 1657. Notwithstanding the levity of his character, he had a generous
heart, and was a firm and active friend. He wrote with
much success; his “Life of Don Juan de Castro,
” is
esteemed one of the best written books in the Portuguese
language. It was published in folio, and was translated
into Latin by Rotto, an Italian Jesuit. He wrote also a
small number of poems in the same language, which have
considerable elegance, and are to be found in a collection
published at Lisbon in 1718, under the title of “Fenix
Renacida.
”
ents at court, and flew from the constraint of Versailles to the liberty of Paris, where he became a writer for the stage. He is the person who is humourously represented
, a French poet, chiefly
celebrated for his dramatic writings, was born at Paris in
1648. He had a good natural taste for music, painting,
sculpture, architecture, and all the fine arts. He had
also a taste for laying-out gardens, and this procured him
the place of overseer of gardens to the king, which he sold
for a moderate sum, as a supply to his extravagance,
which was unbounded. He was valet-de-chambre to Louis
XIV. and highly in favour with him; but his love of expence outwent even the bounty of his master. “There
are two men,
” said Louis, “whom I shall never enrich,
Fresny and Bontems.
” These were his two valets-dechambre, who were well matched in extravagance. At
length, Fresny sold all his appointments at court, and flew
from the constraint of Versailles to the liberty of Paris,
where he became a writer for the stage. He is the person
who is humourously represented by Le Sage in his “Diable
Boiteux,
” as marrying his laundress by way of paying her
bill. He was twice married, and both times, it is said, in
a similar way. He wrote many dramatic pieces, some of
which were long established on the stage. These were,
“La Reconciliation Normande, Le Double Voyage, La
Coquette de Village, Le Marriage rompu, L'Esprit de
Contradiction, Le Dedit.
” He was also the author of
cantatas, which he set to music himself; several songs,
some of which were famous; a little work often reprinted,
called “Les Amusements serieux et comiques,
” and
“Nouvelles Historiques
” all enlivened by a singular and
gay fancy. He died, aged seventy-six, in 1724. D'Alembert has drawn a parallel between Destouches and him as
comic writers. His works were collected in 6 volumes,
duodecimo.
, a learned critical and poetical writer of Germany, was born at Baling, in Suabia, in 1547. His father
, a learned critical and poetical writer of Germany, was born at Baling, in Suabia, in 1547. His father being a minister and a man of letters, taught him the rudiments of learning, and then sent him to Tubingen, where he made so amazing a progress in the Greek and Latin tongues, that he is said to have written poetry in both when he was no more than thirteen years of age. He continued to improve himself in compositions of several kinds, as well prose as verse; and at twenty years old was made a professor in the university of Tubingen. Though his turn lay principally towards poetry, insomuch, that as Melchior Adam tells us, he really could make verses as, fast as he wanted them, yet he was acquainted with every part of science and learning. He used to moderate in philosophical disputes; and to read public lectures in mathematics and astronomy, before he had reached his twenty-fifth year. In 1579, his reputation being much extended, he had a mind to try his fortune abroad, and therefore prepared to go to the ancient university of Friburg, where he had promised to read lectures. But he was obliged to desist from this purpose, partly because his wife refused to accompany him, and partly because the duke of Wirtemberg would not consent to his going thither, or any where else.
not certain. It was well received, however, and probably gained him the title of Clerk (secretary or writer) of the chamber to that princess, which he was in possession
He had but just left school, and was scarcely twenty
years ol i, when at the intreaty of “his dear lord and master sir Robert de Namur, lord of Beaufort,
” he undertook
to write the history of the wars of his own time, more particularly of those which ensued after the battle of Poitiers.
Four years afterwards, having gone to England, he presented a part of this history to queen Philippa of Hainault,
the wife of Edward III. However young he might then
be, he had already travelled into the most distant provinces
of France. The object of his visit to England was to tear
himself from the pains of an attachment which had tormented him for a long time. This passion took possession
of his heart from his infancy; it lasted ten years, and
sparks of it were again rekindled in a more advanced age.
The history of this attachment may be seen in our authority. It appears to have been first childish, and then romantic, and for his feelings in either state, we have only
poetical evidence, and from that we learn that he had
more mistresses than one. He had made two journies to
England, but on which occasion he presented his history
to queen Philippa is not certain. It was well received,
however, and probably gained him the title of Clerk (secretary or writer) of the chamber to that princess, which
he was in possession of from 1361. She is said frequently
to have amused herself, in that age of romantic gallantry,
by making Froissart compose amorous ditties; but this
occupation must be considered solely as a relaxation that
no way impeded more serious works, since during the five
years he was attached to the service of queen Philippa, he
travelled at her expence to various parts of Europe, the
object of which seems to be a research after whatever
might enrich his history.
ation,” &c. and it produced a controversy, of which some notice will be taken in our article on that writer. 3. “Ivonis Carnotens-is Episcopi opera,” Paris, I 647, fol.
His works were, 1. “Sumtna totins philosophise e D.
Thomae Aquinatis doctrina,
” Paris, Thomas a Kempis vindicatus per unuin e Canonicis regularibus congregationis Gallicanae,
” Paris, Imitation,
” &c.
and it produced a controversy, of which some notice will
be taken in our article on that writer. 3. “Ivonis Carnotens-is Episcopi opera,
” Paris, I Dissertatio philologiea de virginhate honorata, erudita,
adornata, fnecunda,
” ibid. Antitheses Angustini et Calvini,
” ibid. Kalendarinm Romanum,
” taken
from an ancient ms. and illustrated by a preface and two
dissertations, on festival days, and saints’ days, ibid. 1652,
8vo. 7. “O ratio in obitum Matthoei Mole
”,“ibid. 1656,
4to. Mole was keeper of the seals. He published also
various epistles and tracts on subjects of ecclesiastical history. His own life was published in 1663, 4to, under the
title
” Joan. Frontonis Memoria disertis per amicos virosque
clarissimos encomiis celebrata."
, a Roman writer, who flourished in the first century, and was in high repute
, a Roman writer, who
flourished in the first century, and was in high repute
under Vespasian, Titus, Domitian, Nerva, and Trajan,
was a man of consular dignity, a great officer who commanded the Roman armies in England, and elsewhere, with
success; and he is mentioned in high terms of panegyric
by all the writers of his time. He was city-prgetor when
Vespasian and Titus were consuls. Nerva made him crfrtitor of the aquasducts, which occasioned him to write his
treatise, “De Aquaeductibus Urbis Romse.
” He wrote
also “Tres libros’ Stratagematum,
” or, concerning the
stratagems used in war by the most eminent Greek and
Roman commanders; and afterwards added a fourth, coritaining examples of those arts and maxims, discoursed of
in the former. These two works are still extant, together
with a piece “De Re Agraria;
” and another, “De Limitibus.
” They have been often printed separately, but
were all published together in a neat edition at Amsterdam
in 1661, with notes by Robertus Keuchenius, who has
placed at the end the fragments of several works of Frontinus that are lost. This eminent man died in the year
106, under Trajan, and was succeeded as augur by the
younger Pliny, who mentions him with honour. He forbade any monument to be erected to him after his death,
declaring, that every man was sure to be remembered
without any such testimonial, if he had lived so as to deserve it. His words, as Pliny has preserved them, were
these: “Impensa monument! supervacua est memoria
nostri durabit, si vita meruimus.
”
, an English law- writer, was the son of Thomas Fulbeck, who was mayor of Lincoln at
, an English law-writer, was the
son of Thomas Fulbeck, who was mayor of Lincoln at the
time of his death in J 566. He was born in the parish of
St. Benedict in that city in 1560, entered as a commoner
of St. Alban hall, Oxford, in 1577, and was admitted
scholar of Corpus Christi college about two years after. In
1581 he took his bachelor’s degree, and the next year
became probationer fellow. He then removed to Gloucester-hall (now Worcester college) where he completed
the degree of M. A. in 1584. From Oxford he went to
Gray’s Inn, London, where he applied with great assiduity to the study of the municipal law. Wood says, he
had afterwards the degree of civil law conferred on him,
but where he had not been able to discover, nor is the
place or time of his death known. From an extract from,
bishop Kennet, in the new edition of Wood, it seems not
improbable that he took orders. His works are, 1. “Christian Ethics,
” Lond. An historical collection of the continual factions, tumults, and massacres -of
the Romans before the peaceable empire of Augustus
Caesar,
” ibid. A direction or
preparative to the study of the Law,
” ibid. A parallel or conference of the civil, the canon, and the common law,
” ibid. The Pandects of the Laws of
Nations; or the discourses of the matters in law, wherein
the nations of the world do agree,
” ibid.
, an ecclesiastical writer, was borti at Telepta, or Tellepte, about the year 468. He was
, an ecclesiastical writer, was borti at Telepta, or Tellepte, about the year 468. He was of an illustrious family, the son of Claudius, and grandson of Gordianus, a senator of Carthage. Claudius dying early, left his son, then very young, to the care of his widow Mariana. He was properly educated in the knowledge of the Latin and Greek languages, and made such progress in his studies, that while yet a boy he could repeat all Homer, and spoke Greek with fluency and purity. As soon as he was capable of an employment he was made procurator or receiver of the revenues of his province. But this situation displeased him, because of the rigour he was forced to use in levying taxes; and therefore, notwithstanding the tears and dissuasions of his mother, he left the world, and took the monastic vows under Faustus, a bishop persecuted by the Arian faction, who had founded a monastery in that neighbourhood. The continued persecutions of the Arians soon separated him and Faustus; and not long after, the incursions of the Moors obliged him to retire into the country of Sicca, where he was whipped and imprisoned. Afterwards he resolved to go into Egypt; but in his voyage was dissuaded by Eulalius bishop of Syracuse, because the monks of the East had separated from the catholic church. He consulted also a bishop of Africa, who had retired into Sicily; and this bishop advised him to return to his own country, after he had made a journey to Rome. King Theodoric was in that city when he arrived there, which was in the year 500. After he had visited the sepulchres of the apostles he returned to his own country, where he built a monastery.
in language, was born in 1693. He was educated at the university of Rintlen in Westphalia, and was a writer of several philological tracts in Latin. But the most celebrated
, a native of
Marpurg, and a celebrated critic in the Latin language,
was born in 1693. He was educated at the university of
Rintlen in Westphalia, and was a writer of several
philological tracts in Latin. But the most celebrated part of
his works consists of several treatises which he published
successively on the history of the Latin language, beginning with its original formation, and pursuing it through
the several ages, from youth to extreme old age. His
treatises “De Origine Latinae Linguae,
” and “De Pueritia Latins Linguae,
” were published in
rical strain, and therefore is censured by Cremutius Cordus, in Tacitus, as a slandering and abusive writer. Horace is thought to have ridiculed the false sublime of his
, called Bibaculus, perhaps from his excessive
drinking, an ancient Latin poet, was born at Cremona
about the year of Rome 650, or 100 before Christ. He
wrote annals, of which Macrobius has preserved some fragments. They are inserted in Maittaire’s “Corpus Poetarum. >r Quintilian says, that he wrote iambics also irt a
very satirical strain, and therefore is censured by Cremutius Cordus, in Tacitus, as a slandering and abusive writer.
Horace is thought to have ridiculed the false sublime of
his taste; yet, according to Macrobius, Virgil is said to
have imitated him in many places. But some are of opinion that the
” Annals" may be attributed to Furius Antias, or Anthius, a contemporary poet, whose fragments
are likewise in Maittaire’s collection.
, a learned Rabbinical writer, was the son of Dr. Gaffarell, by Lucrece de Bermond, his wife;
, a learned Rabbinical writer,
was the son of Dr. Gaffarell, by Lucrece de Bermond, his
wife; and was born at Mannes, in Provence, about 1601.
He was educated at the university of Apt, in that county,
where he prosecuted his studies with indefatigable industry; and applying himself particularly to the Hebrew
language and Rabbinical learning, was wonderfully pleased
with the mysterious doctrines of the Cabala, and commenced author in their defence at the age of twenty-two.
He printed a 4to volume at Paris in 1623, under_the title
of “The secret mysteries of the divine Cabala, defended
against the trifling objections of the Sophists,
” or “Abdita
divinae Cabalae mysteria,
” &c. The following year he
published a paraphrase upon that beautiful ode the 137th
Psalm, “By the waters of Babylon we sat down and wept,
when we remembered thee, O Sion>
” -&c. He began
early to be inflamed with an ardent desire of travelling for
his improvement in literature, in which his curiosity was
boundless.
, an eminent musical writer, a native of Lodi, born Jan. 14, 1451, of obscure parents, was
, an eminent musical writer,
a native of Lodi, born Jan. 14, 1451, of obscure parents,
was first intended for priest’s orders, but after studying
music for two years under John Goodenach, a carmelite,
he manifested so much genius for that science, that it was
thought expedient to make it his profession. After learning the rudiments of music at Lodi, he went to Mantua,
where he was patronized by the marquis Lodovico Gonzago; and where, during two years, he pursued his studies
with unwearied assiduity night and day, and acquired
great reputation, both in the speculative and practical
part of his profession. From this city he went to Verona,
where he read public lectures on music for two years more,
and published several works; after which he removed to
Genoa, whither he was invited by the doge Prospero;
there he entered into priest’s orders. From Genoa he
was invited to Milan by the duke and duchess Galeazzo,
but they being soon after expelled that city, he returned
to Naples, where Philip of Bologna, professor- royal, received him as his colleague; and he became so eminent
in the theory of music, that he was thought superior to
many celebrated and learned musicians, his contemporaries, with whom he now conversed and disputed. He
there published his profound <“Treatise on the Theory
of Harmony,
” Theoricum Opus Harmonicae Disciplinse,
” mentioned
above, Neapolis,
Deftnitiones Term. Musicae,
” of John Tinctor. 2. “Practica
Musicse utriusque Cantus,
” Milan, Angelicum ac Divinum
Opus Musicae Materna Lingua Scrip.
” Milan, De Harmonica Musicor. Instrumentorum,
” Milan,
was an excellent poet, especially in the Latin tongue, and reputed the best comedian (i.e. dramatic writer) of his time.” He had a controversy with Dr. John Rainolds,
Wood says, “he was an excellent poet, especially in
the Latin tongue, and reputed the best comedian (i.e. dramatic writer) of his time.
” He had a controversy with Dr.
John Rainolds, on the lawfulness of stage-plays, which
appears to have been carried on in manuscript letters, until
Raiuolds published his “Overthrow of Stage-plays,
” containing his answer to Gager and a rejoinder. He had a
more singular controversy with Mr. Heale, of Exeter-college, in consequence of his (Gager’s) asserting at the Oxford Act in 1608, “That it was lawful for husbands to
beat their wives.
” This Mr. Heale answered in “An
Apology for Women,*' &c. Oxon. 1609, 4to. In the
” Exequiae D. Philippi Sidnxi,“Gager has a copy of verses in
honour of that celebrated character, who, when living, had
a great respect for his learning and virtues. His Latin
plays are, 1.
” Meleager,“a tragedy. 2.
” Rivales,“a
comedy; and 3.
” Ulysses redux," a tragedy. These
were all acted, and we are told, with great applause, in
Christ church hall. The first only was printed in 1592,
4to, and occasioned the controversy between the author
and Dr. Rainolds. Gager’s letter in defence of this and
his other plays, is in the library of University-college.
om he had been so long intimate, that perhaps no man. was more fit to appreciate his character. This writer, the last of the old school of French literati, died at St.
, an elegant French historian, member of the old French academy, of that of inscriptions and belles-lettres, and of the third class of the
institute, was born at Ostel, near Soissons, March 20,
1728. On his education or early pursuits, the only work
in which we find any notice of him is totally silent, and
we are obliged for the present to content ourselves with a
list of his works, all of which, however, have been eminently successful in France, and procured to the author
an extensive reputation and many literary honours, he
wrote, 1. “Rhetorique Franchise, a l'usage des jeunes
demoiselles,
” Paris, Poetique Françoise,
” ibid. Parallele des quatre Electre, de Sophocle, d'Euripide,
de Crebillon, et de Voltaire,
” ibid. ibid. 1757, 12mo.
5.
” Histoire de Marie de Bourgogne,“ibid. 1757, 12mo.
6.
” Histoire de Francois I.“1769, 7 vols. 12mo; of this
there have been several editions, and it is not without
reason thought to be Gaillard’s principal work; but Voltaire is of opinion that he softens certain obnoxious parts
of Francis’s conduct rather too much, but in general his
sentiments are highly liberal, and more free from the prejudices of his country and his religion than could have
been expected. Indeed, it may be questioned whether
he was much attached to the latter. 7.
” Histoire des rivalités de la France et de l'Angleterre,“1771—1802, 11
vols. 12mo, a work in which the author, not altogether
unsuccessfully, struggles to be impartial. 8.
” Histoire
de Charlemagne,“4 vols. 12mo. Gibbon, our historian,
who availed himself much of this history, says that
” it is
laboured with industry and elegance.“9.
” Observations
sur l'Histoire de France de Messieurs Velly, Villaret, et
Gamier,“1807, 4 vols. 12mo, a posthumous work. Besides these he was the author of various eloges, discourses,
poems, odes, epistles, &c. which were honoured with academical prizes; and several learned papers in the memoirs
of the academy of inscriptions. He wrote also in the
”
Journal des Savans“from 1752 to 1792, and in the
” Mercure“from 1780 to 1789, and in the new Encyclopedic he wrote
three fourths of the historical articles. His last performance, which bore no mark of age, or decay of faculties,
was an
” Eloge historique" on M. de Malesherbes, with
whom he had been so long intimate, that perhaps no man.
was more fit to appreciate his character. This writer, the
last of the old school of French literati, died at St. Firmin,
near Chantilly, in 1806.
, or Galateus Liciensis, an eminent Italian writer, whose proper name was Ferrari, isgenerally known by that of
, or Galateus Liciensis, an eminent Italian writer, whose proper name was Ferrari, isgenerally known by that of Galateo, from his native place,
Galatina, in Otranto, where he was born in 1444. His
father dying in his infancy, he was taken in to the protection of his grandfather, who had him educuted at Nardo.
He afterwards studied medicine, which, after taking his
degrees at Ferrara, he practised at Naples with great reputation, and was appointed physician to the king, in consequence of the recommendation of Sannazarius and Pontanus. The air of Naples, however, not agreeing with
him, he removed to Gailipoli, near Galatina, where he
resumed his practice. He died Nov. 12, 1517. He was
not only eminent as a physician, but his natural and moral
philosophy is said to have risen beyond the level of the age
in which he lived. He is also said to have indicated the
possibility of the navigation to the East by the Cape of
Good Hope, in his treatise “De situ Elementorum,
” published in De situ lapygiae,
” Basil, A Description of Gailipoli.
” 3. “Successi dell‘ armata Turchescanella citta d’Otranto dell' anno 1480,
” 4to,
Galen is the writer that contains by far the most anatomy of all the ancients. He
Galen is the writer that contains by far the most anatomy of all the ancients. He has given a much more complete anatomical account of the human body than any of his predecessors, or even successors for a thousand years after. There can be no doubt that he dissected the bodies of the inferior animals. But Vesalius, the first of the moderns who ventured to call in question his infallibility, affirmed that he had never dissected a human subject; and this seems now the general opinion, particularly of Haller, and other learned historians of the art.
, or Gallæus, a Dutch writer, who was born at Rotterdam, according to the inscription on
, or Gallæus, a Dutch writer,
who was born at Rotterdam, according to the inscription
on his portrait, or according to other authorities, at Zuriczee, in 1627, and died at Campen in 1709, was a clergyman and an able philologist. His principal work is his
treatise on the “Sybilline Oracles,
” 2 vols. 4to, the first
of which,containing the Oracles, was published at Amsterdam in 1689, and the second, which consists of dissertations, appeared soon after. In this he has brought together every thing relating to these celebrated fictions,
but neither with success, nor judgment, according to Fabricius and his biographer Reimar, who speak with harshness of his abilities, and give us an extraordinary instance
of his ignorance in classing Agathias and Jamblicus among
Latin writers. They also seem to intimate that he frequently borrows without acknowledgment. Galle was
more successful in a very correct edition of “Lactantius,
”
published at Leyden in Minutius Felix,
” but did not live to complete it.
, a writer of some eminence, and a member of the French academy of sciences,
, a writer of some eminence, and a member of the French academy of sciences,
was born at Meulan in 1672, and, entering the church,
obtained the office of canon of the Holy Cross de la Bretonniere, and died at Paris in 1756. He was much esteemed
for his literary talents, which appeared in the following
works: 1. “Physical Astronomy,
” Literary and Philosophical Dissertations,
” System of the Christian Philosopher,
” System of the Heart,
” published in The Elegancies of Language reduced to their Principles,
” a book called by one writer, the
“Dictionary of fine Thoughts,
” and by others pronounced
to be a work which every man who writes should read.
llustrative of his amiable character and liberal sentiments; but we know not how to give credit to a writer who soon afterwards published some volumes of “Letters” by Ganganelli,
, who was
elevated to the popedom by the name of Clement XIV.
was the son of a physician, and born in 1705. He was
educated at Rimini, near his birth-place, and at the age
of eighteen entered into the Franciscan order at Urbino.
After finishing his studies at various seminaries, he was
appointed in 1740 to be professor of divinity in the college
of St Bonaventure, at Rome. In this situation he gained
the good opinion of pope Benedict XIV. who gave him the
place of counsellor of the holy office; and in 1759 Clement XIII. made him a cardinal. It is said that in all
his intercourse with his brethren and at their public assemblies, he endeavoured to lower their tone, and to persuade
them that it was almost too late to oppose the will of the
sovereigns of Europe by a display of ecclesiastical power.
This could not be very acceptable to the cardinals, who
persisted in their opinion of the power of the reigning
pontiff, and encouraged him in his disputes with France
and other kingdoms. On the death of Clement XIII. Ganganelli was elected in his room In May 1769, chiefly by
the influence of the courts of France and Spain, who now
urged him to suppress the order of Jesuits, and although
he did not enter on that measure without much deliberation, it was at last carried, and forms the principal event
of his pontificate. He signed the brief for this purpose
on July 21, 1773, and it is said, with considerable reluctance. The consequence to papal power was no doubt
great, but it appeared after all to be but one link in the
great chain of causes which must relieve the world entirely
from its influence. Ganganelli did not long survive this
event, dying Sept. 22, 1773. After his death, a life of
him was published by Caraccioli, replete with anecdotes
illustrative of his amiable character and liberal sentiments;
but we know not how to give credit to a writer who soon
afterwards published some volumes of “Letters
” by Ganganelli, which, it is now universally acknowledged, were
forgeries.
ey, in his distress he applied to his old servant the secretary, who on this occasion is said by the writer of his life in the Biog. Britannica, to have afforded an eminent
As this step proved the ruin of Wolsey, in his distress
he applied to his old servant the secretary, who on this
occasion is said by the writer of his life in the Biog. Britannica, to have afforded an eminent proof of his gratitude,
in soliciting his pardon; which was followed in three days
by his restoration to his archbishopric, and 6000l. sent
him, besides plate and furniture for his house and chapel.
It is certain, however, that Gardiner did not interpose before Wolsey had supplicated him more than once in the
most humble manner, to intercede for him, and it is equally
certain that Gardiner did not risk much in applying to the
king, who for some time entertained a considerable regard
for the fallen Wolsey. Gardiner also, at the cardinal’s
recommendation, in 1530, introduced the provost of Beverly to the king, who received him graciously, and shewed
him that he was his good and gracious lord, and admitted
and accepted him as his orator and scholar. These were
matters of easy management. But the year had not expired, when the king’s service called the secretary to a
task of another nature, which was to procure from the university of Cambridge their declaration in favour of his majesty’s cause, after Cranmer’s book should appear in support of it. In this most difficult point his old colleague
Fox was joined with him; and they spared no pains, address, or artifice in accomplishing it. To make amends
for such an unreserved compliance with the royal will, a
door was presently opened in the church, through which,
by one single step (the archdeaconry of Leicester, into which he was installed in the spring of 1531), Gardiner
advanced to the rich see of Winchester, and was there
consecrated the November following. Gardiner was
not, at the time, apprized of the king’s design of conferring on him this rich bishopric; for Henry, in his caprice,
would sometimes rate him soundly, and when he bestowed
it on him said, “I have often squared with you, Gardiner,
but I love you never the worse, as the bishopric I give you
will convince you.
” As bishop of Winchester he now assisted in the court when the sentence, declaring Katharine’s
marriage null and void, was passed by Cranmer, May
22, 1533. The same year he went ambassador to the
French king at Marseilles, to discover the designs of the
pope and that monarch in their interview, of which Henry
was very suspicious; and upon his return home, being
called, as other bishops were, to acknowledge and defend
the king’s supremacy, he readily complied, and published
his defence for it, with this title, “De vera Obedientia.
”
His conduct was very uniform in this point, as well as in
that of the divorce and the subsequent marriage, and he
acquired great reputation by his writings in defence of
them.
, an ingenious French writer, was born at Goron in the Maine, March 13, 1729. After b.eing
, an ingenious French writer,
was born at Goron in the Maine, March 13, 1729. After
b.eing educated, probably in his own country, he came to
Paris, withput money or interest, and depending only on
his learning. This soon recommended him, however, to
a place in the college of Harcourt, and in 1760 he was
appointed coadjutor to the abbé Sellier in the royal college,
and was made before 1764 Hebrew professor, and chosen
a member of the academy of inscriptions au4 belles lettres.
His useful studies were interrupted by the revolution,
and in 1793 he was compelled ta fly, for refusing the republican oaths. He then went to Bougival, where he died
in 1795. All he could save from confiscation was his
library; but his friend Lalande, the celebrated astronomer,
so effectually represented to the government, the disgrace
of suffering a man of so much merit to want bread, that a
pension was granted him. He wrote, 1. “L'Homme de
lettres,
” Paris, Traité
” de l'origine du gouveruement
françoise,“1765, ib. 12 mo. 3.
” De l'education civile,“1765, 12mo. 4.
” De commerce remis a sa place." In
1770 he published the 9th vol. 4to of Velly and Villaret’s
History of France, beginning with the year 1469, and
continuing his labours in this work, produced the 15th vol.
in 1786, displaying throughout the whole more erudition
than his predecessors. He wrote several papers in the
memoirs of the academy of inscriptions, relative, among
other subjects, to the philosophy of the ancients, and
especially to that of Plato, of which he was perhaps rather
too fond, though less fanciful than some modern Platonists.
As a writer, Garrick claims but a second place. There is in the Biog. Dramatica
As a writer, Garrick claims but a second place. There is in the Biog. Dramatica a list of about forty dramatic pieces, some original, but chiefly alterations of old plays, or light temporary pieces. Besides these he wrote some minor poems, and a vast number of prologues and epilogues. The general character of all these is vivacity, neatness, and a happy adaptation to the occasion.
o see an unanswerable defence made for him, by Addison. The task, indeed, was easy, and that elegant writer in the conclusion of it observes, that the same person who has
In politics, Dr. Garth was prompted not more by
good sense than by good disposition, to make his muse
subservient to his interest, only by proceeding uniformly
in the same road, without any malignant deviations.
Thus, as he had enjoyed the sunshine of the court
during lord Godolphin’s administration in queen Anne’s
reign, that minister had the pleasure to find him among
the first of those who paid the muse’s tribute on the
reverse of his fortune in 1710; and in the same unchangeable spirit, when both the sense and poetry of
this address were attacked by Prior with all the outrage
of party virulence, he took no notice of it; but had the
satisfaction to see an unanswerable defence made for him,
by Addison. The task, indeed, was easy, and that elegant
writer in the conclusion of it observes, that the same person
who has endeavoured to prove that he who wrote the “Dispensary
” was no poet, will very suddenly undertake to
shew that he who gained the battle of Blenheim, was no
general. There was, indeed, no need of a prophetic
spirit to inspire the prediction. It was written in Sept.
1710; and the following year, in December, the duke of
Marlborough was removed from all his places, and having
obtained leave to go abroad, embarked at Dover for Ostend, Nov. 30, 1712. Dr. Garth had lived in the particular favour and esteem of this great man while in power,
and when he was out of power he lamented in elegant verse,
his disgrace and voluntary exile.
, an Italian writer of some note, was born in 1549, at Bagnacavallo, near Ferrara;
, an Italian writer of some note, was
born in 1549, at Bagnacavallo, near Ferrara; he was a regular canon lateran, and died in his own country, 1589, set. 40.
He had chiefly educated himself, and learned Hebrew and
Spanish without a master. He was author of several moral
works, printed at Venice, 1617, 4to. But the principal
production of this active writer and general reader is
entitled “La Piazza universale di tutti le profession! del
mondo,
” a work of infinite labour and considerable use at
the time it was written, as the author had almost all the
materials to seek, there being no direct model on so extensive a scale then extant. It seems first to have been
published at Venice, the year in which he died, and afterwards went through innumerable editions. Superficial
knowledge only is to be found in his book; but it points
out where more and better information may be found. It
has been truly said by Niceron, that the works of Garzoni
prove him to have dipped into all the sciences, and sufficiently manifest the extent of his knowledge, and of what
he would have been capable with a regular education and
a longer life. His reflections, when he allows himself
time to make them, and room in his book for their insertion, are excellent. But the task he had set himself was
too great for a single mind, or the bodily labour of an individual. It is extremely difficult to render the title of
this book in English; the word Piazza, has twelve or fourteen different meanings and shades of meaning in the
Crusca; it implies a square or market-place appropriated
to commerce. Perhaps “the universal commerce of all
the arts and professions in the world
” may nearly express
the author’s meaning. 1
o his doctrine were there set forth to particular advantage, by the skill of a very able and learned writer, and proposed with a reasonable and good spirit. He resigned
, a distinguished English bishop,
was born about 1662, at Slapton in Northamptonshire; and,
being sent to Westminster school in 1676, was admitted
on the foundation, and elected to Christ Church, in Oxford, where he of course became a student in 1680. He
took the degrees in arts in 1687; after which, entering
into orders, and proceeding in divinity, he took a bachelor’s degree in that faculty, June 23, 1694. The same
year he was made preacher to the hon. society of Lincoln’s
Inn, in which station he acquitted himself so well that he
was appointed to preach Mr. Boyle’s lecture in 1697.
Having finished those eight sermons, he drew them up in
the form of a continued discourse, which he published the
same year. The subject of this piece being a defence of
religion in general against atheism, Gastrell prosecuted
the design further, in asserting the truth of the Christian
religion against the deists. This he published in another
discourse, in 1699, by way of continuation, or second part
of the same subject. He commenced D. D. July 13, 1700;
being then chaplain to Robert Harley, esq. speaker of the
house of commons. The ferment that had been raised by
the dispute between South and Sherlock upon the Trinity,
being still kept up, Dr. Gastrell, in 1702, published“Some
Considerations concerning the Trinity, and the ways of
managing that Controversy:
” and the same year was collated to a canonry of Christ Church in Oxford.
Meanwhile, he continued to give public proofs of his
hearty concern for religion; and published, in 1707, his
excellent work entitled “The Christian Institutes, or the
sincere Word of God, &c.
” collected out of the Old and
New Testament, digested under proper heads, and delivered in the words of scripture. This has been repeatedly
printed. The same year also, being appointed to preach
the sermon at the aniversary meeting of the charity-schools
in London, he printed that discourse; in which the peculiar advantage of these charities is set in a new light, by
contrasting them with the popish monasteries. Mr. Collins, in his “Essay concerning the use of Reason,
” having
animadverted on some things in the doctor’s “Considerations concerning the Trinity,
” which had gone through
two editions, he this year published a third, subjoining a
vindication of the work, in answer to Collins. In 1711
he was chosen proctor in convocation for the chapter of
Christ Church, and appointed one of the chaplains in ordinary to the queen. In 1714 he published “Remarks
upon the Scripture Doctrine of the Trinity, by Dr. Samuel
Clarke,
” who acknowledged that the objections to his doctrine were there set forth to particular advantage, by the
skill of a very able and learned writer, and proposed with a
reasonable and good spirit. He resigned the preacher’s
place at Lincoln’s-inn this year, upon his promotion to
the see of Chester; and he was allowed to hold his canonry
of Christ Church in commendam. He had for some time
before been appointed one of the commissioners for building the fifty new churches in and about London; and had
become a member of the society for propagating the gospel
in foreign parts.
he withal read more of the ancients, and fewer of the moderns, he would have made no inconsiderable writer.“Mr. Bull wrote an answer to these” Animadversions,“which he
3. “The Papists’ bait; or their usual method in gaining
proselytes answered,
” London, Examination of the case of the Quakers
concerning Oaths, propounded by them, ann. f673, to the
consideration of the king and both houses of parliament,
”
c. London, Ichnographia doctrinae de Justificationesecundum typum in monte,
” London, Harmonia Apostolica,
” which Mr. Gataker, concealing his name, communicated to several bishops, stirring
them up by letter to make use of their authority against
the doctrines maintained by Mr. Bull, as pernicious and
heretical, and contrary to the decrees of the Church of
England, andof all other reformed churches. These
“Animadversions,
” which are commonly cited by Mr.
Bull under the name of Censura, were communicated to
him in 1670 by Dr. Nicholson, bishop of Gloucester; angl
in 1671 they were discovered to Mr. Bull to have been
written by Mr. Charles Gataker, who in these “Animadversions,
” endeavours to reconcile St. Paul with St. James
by the distinction of a twofold Justification, as respecting a
twofold accusation, according to the different conditions of
the covenant of works and the covenant of grace. For he
maintains, that we are accused before God, either as sinners
or as unbelievers; and that we are justified against the first
accusation by faith alone, laying hold on the grace and righteousness of Christ; and against the second by works, and
not by faith only, as these are the signs and evidences of
our being true believers. Mr. Nelson observes, that Mr.
“Gataker
” appears to have been a person of great violence in
his temper, but one well-intentioned, and a very zealous
protestant; and had he had but more coolness of thought,
and had he withal read more of the ancients, and fewer of
the moderns, he would have made no inconsiderable writer.“Mr. Bull wrote an answer to these
” Animadversions,“which he entitled
” Examen Censurae," in which he reflects severely on Mr. Charles Gataker for publishing his
father’s posthumous tract abovementioned, since he had
not thereby consulted the reputation of a parent, who by
his great critical knowledge and other learning had made
himself more considerable, than to deserve that such
crudities should be published under his name, at least by
a son.